Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n appear_v life_n sin_n 4,010 5 4.7063 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49846 A search after souls and spiritual operations in man Layton, Henry, 1622-1705. 1700 (1700) Wing L759; ESTC R39121 317,350 468

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

sort_v but_o only_o in_o the_o body_n and_o by_o the_o organ_n of_o it_o so_o as_o the_o soul_n can_v act_v they_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o only_o in_o those_o very_a organ_n ordain_v by_o god_n and_o nature_n for_o those_o purpose_n viz._n not_o see_v but_o in_o the_o eye_n remember_v but_o in_o the_o memory_n not_o understand_v but_o in_o the_o intellect_n any_o such_o part_n or_o organ_n harm_v or_o lose_v the_o soul_n can_v only_o work_v with_o what_o be_v leave_v or_o can_v work_v at_o all_o to_o those_o purpose_n hence_o it_o seem_v these_o second_o sort_n of_o power_n in_o man_n do_v not_o more_o proceed_v from_o the_o soul_n than_o those_o of_o the_o first_o sort_v do_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o head_n and_o intellectual_a organ_n there_o produces_z and_o act_v the_o intellectual_a power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o same_o soul_n in_o the_o vital_a part_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n produce_v and_o act_n affection_n and_o passion_n and_o sensual_a appetite_n which_o solicit_v the_o judgement_n that_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v employ_v so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v needful_a for_o the_o procure_v their_o satisfaction_n and_o all_o these_o repetition_n tend_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o term_v these_o first_o sort_n of_o faculty_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o faculty_n the_o spirit_n can_v reasonable_o be_v make_v a_o argument_n induce_v to_o believe_v a_o easy_a natural_a or_o feasible_a separation_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n and_o that_o one_o of_o they_o can_v have_v a_o subsistence_n without_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o we_o conclude_v the_o examination_n of_o such_o text_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v allege_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o we_o proceed_v to_o produce_v argument_n which_o work_v in_o debilitation_n of_o such_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n first_o we_o say_v it_o seem_v a_o great_a weaken_n of_o that_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o whole_a bible_n to_o be_v find_v one_o text_n which_o do_v express_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n of_o the_o man_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v immaterial_a or_o immortal_a second_o none_o of_o the_o text_n before_o quote_v nor_o any_o other_o from_o which_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v prove_v do_v principal_o intend_v the_o teach_v or_o prove_v of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o all_o such_o text_n do_v principal_o aim_v at_o some_o other_o end_n or_o design_n and_o what_o be_v draw_v from_o those_o text_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o point_n be_v but_o collateral_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o such_o text_n and_o rise_v only_o upon_o a_o collection_n draw_v from_o inference_n the_o parable_n of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n luke_n 16._o look_n most_o like_a a_o design_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o yet_o ver._n 15._o our_o lord_n teach_v that_o what_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n be_v abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o then_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o law_n and_o in_o ver._n 19_o begin_v this_o parable_n intend_v thereby_o to_o dilucidate_v his_o assertion_n of_o ver._n 15._o that_o man_n may_v be_v and_o often_o be_v great_o deceive_v in_o their_o opinion_n concern_v thing_n and_o particular_o in_o judge_v of_o the_o happiness_n of_o man_n condition_n for_o illustration_n of_o which_o doctrine_n he_o place_v dives_n in_o as_o high_a a_o degree_n of_o happiness_n as_o man_n ordinary_o do_v desire_v he_o be_v rich_o array_v and_o fare_v sumptuous_o every_o day_n and_o have_v health_n withal_o and_o lazarus_n he_o put_v down_o as_o low_a in_o comparison_n he_o be_v a_o beggar_n a_o lazar_n and_o full_a of_o sore_n who_o be_v bring_v and_o lay_v at_o dives_n his_o gate_n and_o feed_v with_o the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o his_o table_n here_o be_v dives_n his_o condition_n high_o esteem_v and_o desire_v among_o man_n but_o he_o show_v by_o the_o sequel_n of_o the_o parable_n that_o it_o be_v abominate_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v comfort_v and_o dive_v torment_v so_o as_o the_o illustration_n of_o this_o doctrine_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o main_a intent_n of_o the_o parable_n and_o what_o be_v speak_v of_o discourse_n betwixt_o abraham_n and_o dives_n and_o the_o see_v lazarus_n in_o abraham_n bosom_n afar_o off_o seem_v like_o the_o pomp_n of_o dives_n and_o the_o misery_n of_o lazarus_n not_o real_a but_o parabolical_a or_o invention_n like_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o seed_n some_o among_o thorn_n some_o on_o a_o rock_n some_o upon_o one_o sort_n of_o ground_n and_o some_o upon_o another_o a_o three_o disability_n upon_o the_o tenet_n of_o separate_a subsistence_n be_v that_o in_o all_o our_o evidence_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n very_o copious_a and_o full_a there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_n state_n betwixt_o the_o man_n death_n and_o his_o resurrection_n nor_o concern_v the_o separate_a state_n of_o humane_a soul_n or_o their_o be_v in_o that_o estate_n or_o capacity_n of_o be_v in_o it_o we_o may_v to_o this_o purpose_n look_v back_o upon_o 1_o cor._n 15._o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n all_o christian_a religion_n be_v vain_a our_o preach_a and_o your_o faith_n christian_n be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a and_o you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n here_o appear_v no_o help_n from_o the_o separate_a estate_n or_o subsistence_n of_o a_o soul_n nor_o mention_v of_o such_o a_o thing_n and_o ver._n 18._o all_o that_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n what_o then_o become_v of_o soul_n subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n it_o seem_v s._n paul_n know_v nothing_o of_o such_o a_o estate_n or_o make_v small_a account_n of_o it_o or_o else_o very_a likely_a he_o will_v have_v make_v some_o mention_n of_o it_o phil._n 3.20_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n from_o whence_o also_o we_o look_v for_o the_o saviour_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v it_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o soul_n but_o as_o in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n and_o flesh_n be_v not_o a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n therefore_o the_o soul_n in_o conjunction_n be_v here_o intend_a but_o no_o room_n seem_v to_o be_v leave_v here_o for_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n 1_o pet._n 1.4_o we_o be_v beget_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o a_o inheritance_n in_o heaven_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n ver._n 9_o receive_v the_o end_n of_o your_o faith_n even_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n here_o soul_n be_v mention_v intend_v in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n soul_n for_o person_n as_o gen._n 46.26_o all_o the_o soul_n which_o come_v with_o jacob_n into_o egypt_n all_o the_o soul_n be_v threescore_o and_o six_o and_o the_o two_o son_n of_o joseph_n be_v two_o soul_n as_o before_o have_v be_v large_o quote_v and_o the_o apostle_n refer_v here_o to_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n whence_o body_n must_v be_v conjoin_v and_o no_o mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_v state_n or_o a_o soul_n in_o that_o state_n chap._n 5.4_o those_o who_o do_v well_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o 2_o tim._n 4.8_o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v here_o be_v no_o notice_n take_v of_o intermediate_v time_n or_o estate_n but_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v and_o at_o that_o day_n coloss_n 3.4_o when_o christ_n who_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v then_o shall_v you_o also_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n 1_o joh._n 3.2_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o it_o seem_v he_o know_v not_o of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n but_o expect_v to_o learn_v at_o the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n what_o himself_o shall_v be_v heb._n 9.27_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o this_o the_o judgement_n nothing_o here_o betwixt_o death_n and_o judgement_n and_o expound_v his_o mean_v to_o be_v of_o the_o general_a judgement_n ver._n 28._o christ_n once_o offer_v for_o sin_n shall_v appear_v the_o second_o
time_n without_o sin_n unto_o salvation_n viz._n to_o execute_v the_o last_o judgement_n jam._n 1.12_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o be_v try_v for_o he_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o life_n chap._n 9.8_o be_v patient_a establish_v your_o heart_n for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o viz._n repose_v yourselves_o upon_o that_o without_o tell_v they_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n their_o soul_n shall_v be_v happy_a in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n we_o may_v say_v that_o in_o none_o of_o these_o place_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n do_v we_o find_v mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_n state_n betwixt_o that_o of_o death_n and_o that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n nor_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n or_o self-subsistency_a of_o a_o soul_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n we_o leave_v therefore_o that_o apprehension_n or_o opinion_n much_o enfeeble_v through_o the_o defect_n and_o failure_n of_o such_o testimony_n as_o may_v reasonable_o have_v be_v expect_v to_o have_v be_v find_v on_o that_o behalf_n and_o in_o a_o case_n which_o may_v concern_v the_o church_n to_o be_v right_o inform_v about_o we_o believe_v that_o if_o such_o a_o intermediate_n estate_n there_o be_v or_o such_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n the_o scripture_n in_o all_o these_o and_o other_o place_n will_v not_o be_v altogether_o silent_a concern_v the_o same_o as_o we_o have_v find_v they_o to_o be_v and_o hence_o we_o conclude_v the_o opinion_n thus_o far_o impugn_a be_v infirm_a feeble_a and_o not_o thorough_o maintainable_a by_o argument_n draw_v from_o nature_n and_o reason_n nor_o from_o prudence_n and_o moral_a congruity_n nor_o from_o scripture_n and_o particular_a text_n of_o the_o same_o but_o that_o all_o proof_n of_o it_o hitherto_o draw_v ex_fw-la causis_fw-la and_o from_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o do_v fail_v and_o appear_v very_o insufficient_a for_o the_o support_n of_o it_o and_o hence_o we_o go_v on_o to_o propound_v some_o argument_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v ab_fw-la effectu_fw-la or_o from_o the_o consequence_n which_o arise_v upon_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n of_o the_o man._n and_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a and_o common_a consequence_n of_o error_n to_o raise_v dfficulty_n lead_v to_o absurdity_n and_o create_v inconvenience_n among_o man_n and_o for_o truth_n and_o the_o discovery_n thereof_o to_o dissolve_v difficulty_n and_o promote_v the_o convenience_n of_o man_n and_o nature_n now_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n immateriality_n and_o separate_a subsistence_n do_v raise_v divers_a difficulty_n which_o otherwise_o be_v needless_a we_o propound_v as_o evidence_n the_o question_n make_v by_o s._n austin_n viz._n whether_o the_o soul_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o or_o many_o and_o not_o one_o or_o that_o it_o be_v at_o once_o both_o one_o and_o many_o and_o he_o think_v the_o last_o most_o probable_a though_o seem_o ridiculous_a 2._o there_o be_v difficulty_n concern_v the_o soul_n a_o parte_fw-la ante_fw-la viz._n whence_o it_o come_v or_o how_o it_o be_v derive_v whether_o it_o pre-exist_a or_o be_v new_o create_v by_o god_n upon_o every_o successful_a copulation_n or_o be_v generate_v 3._o if_o by_o new_a creation_n then_o when_o and_o how_o such_o new_a soul_n be_v join_v and_o incorporate_v with_o the_o generate_v body_n 4._o how_o these_o fresh_a and_o new_o make_v soul_n come_v to_o be_v contaminate_v and_o infect_v with_o original_a sin_n derive_v by_o procreation_n from_o adam_n next_o there_o be_v question_n after_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n where_o such_o a_o immaterial_a soul_n reside_v in_o the_o body_n and_o then_o how_o it_o act_v there_o whether_o all_o in_o all_o or_o all_o in_o every_o part_n or_o part_v in_o one_o place_n and_o part_n in_o another_o and_o then_o concern_v such_o a_o soul_n a_o parte_fw-la post_fw-la viz._n what_o become_v of_o it_o when_o the_o man_n die_v do_v it_o slide_v into_o dr._n more_o be_v receptacle_n in_o the_o air_n or_o into_o some_o appoint_a limbus_n or_o dormitory_n or_o to_o some_o place_n of_o pleasure_n or_o punishment_n paradise_n elysium_n or_o tartarum_fw-la or_o whether_o direct_o either_o to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n or_o that_o there_o be_v a_o most_o frequent_a purgatorium_fw-la appoint_v for_o the_o reception_n of_o they_o these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o difficulty_n raise_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o immaterial_a and_o self-subsisting_a soul_n we_o come_v next_o to_o some_o absurdity_n whereunto_o man_n be_v lead_v by_o this_o doctrine_n first_o it_o induce_v to_o assert_v and_o maintain_v that_o god_n do_v create_v a_o new_a soul_n upon_o every_o fruitful_a coition_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v the_o same_o lawful_a or_o not_o and_o the_o same_o for_o all_o humane_a copulation_n with_o beast_n where_o the_o product_n be_v of_o a_o humane_a form_n this_o conceit_n invent_v mere_o to_o shore_n up_o the_o immateriality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o to_o provide_v it_o a_o different_a original_a from_o generation_n be_v neither_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n nor_o support_v by_o any_o manner_n of_o proof_n from_o scripture_n be_v disagreeable_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n incongruous_a to_o the_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o god_n and_o to_o his_o detestation_n of_o wicked_a action_n in_o venery_n contrary_a to_o that_o text_n which_o say_v god_n rest_v from_o his_o work_n of_o the_o creation_n he_o give_v over_o that_o sort_n of_o work_n and_o his_o own_o son_n be_v generate_v if_o god_n shall_v be_v continual_o still_o employ_v in_o create_v new_a soul_n every_o day_n all_o the_o world_n over_o what_o cease_v be_v this_o from_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n this_o will_v not_o be_v true_a that_o after_o the_o six_o day_n he_o cease_v from_o such_o work_n we_o say_v therefore_o that_o this_o indignous_a employment_n of_o daily_a create_a soul_n in_o such_o manner_n and_o to_o make_v wicked_a coition_n effectual_a be_v most_o unworthy_a of_o so_o glorious_a and_o pure_a a_o agent_n and_o therefore_o be_v a_o mere_a fiction_n invent_v to_o support_v this_o opinion_n only_o and_o of_o no_o other_o use_n in_o the_o world_n ground_v neither_o upon_o scripture_n nor_o reason_n but_o oppose_v by_o both_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v pronounce_v not_o only_o false_a and_o feign_a but_o gross_o incongruous_a and_o absurd_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o agent_n the_o operation_n and_o the_o effect_n another_o absurdity_n man_n be_v apt_a to_o be_v lead_v into_o by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v this_o they_o do_v pretend_v that_o after_o god_n have_v thus_o new_o create_v a_o soul_n which_o they_o say_v come_v from_o his_o hand_n fresh_a pure_a and_o undefiled_a she_o poor_a soul_n be_v put_v or_o cast_v into_o the_o new_o generate_v body_n for_o which_o she_o be_v make_v the_o body_n infect_v and_o defile_v with_o original_a sin_n derive_v from_o adam_n she_o be_v there_o present_o infect_v with_o this_o contagious_a disease_n and_o soon_o become_v immerse_v in_o it_o a_o thing_n which_o this_o young_a soul_n can_v neither_o resist_v nor_o help_n and_o there_o the_o much_o to_o be_v pity_v soul_n say_v they_o be_v keep_v as_o in_o a_o cage_n or_o prison_n or_o like_o a_o man_n fall_v into_o a_o deep_a pit_n out_o of_o which_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n get_v and_o then_o this_o soul_n can_v know_v no_o more_o than_o what_o it_o learn_v from_o the_o sense_n and_o other_o bodily_a assistance_n as_o one_o in_o a_o pit_n see_v no_o more_o of_o light_n than_o that_o which_o come_v in_o at_o the_o top_n of_o it_o and_o thus_o this_o young_a pure_a and_o innocent_a soul_n shall_v be_v use_v by_o a_o merciful_a creator_n with_o a_o overgreat_a and_o very_o deplorable_a and_o unreasonable_a and_o most_o unlikely_a measure_n of_o cruelty_n and_o rigour_n that_o god_n shall_v so_o use_v a_o innocent_a soul_n by_o himself_o new_o create_v there_o be_v neither_o sense_n nor_o reason_n for_o man_n to_o believe_v nor_o be_v there_o a_o word_n or_o text_n in_o scripture_n from_o whence_o it_o can_v be_v derive_v and_o the_o whole_a progress_n seem_v so_o incongruous_a and_o absurd_a as_o be_v right_o and_o impartial_o survey_v may_v reasonable_o create_v wonder_n in_o those_o who_o shall_v peruse_v the_o maintainer_n of_o immateriality_n upon_o this_o point_n or_o subject_n that_o they_o can_v believe_v what_o they_o have_v write_v or_o can_v write_v such_o gross_a thing_n and_o put_v they_o into_o man_n hand_n to_o read_v if_o themselves_o have_v not_o believe_v they_o it_o seem_v the_o writer_n rather_o do_v believe_v they_o lead_v thereto_o by_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o common_a reception_n of_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o immateriality_n of_o soul_n which_o they_o believe_v may_v best_o be_v defend_v by_o such_o invention_n as_o these_o and_o to_o add_v
and_o therefore_o we_o be_v will_v rather_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o this_o body_n to_o have_v it_o change_v into_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o therein_o to_o be_v present_a with_o the_o lord_n and_o however_o in_o the_o one_o body_n or_o in_o the_o other_o we_o labour_v present_a or_o absent_a to_o be_v accept_v of_o god_n for_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n soon_o or_o late_a that_o every_o man_n body_n and_o soul_n may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n viz._n when_o he_o be_v alive_o according_o to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a and_o this_o seem_v to_o apply_v all_o that_o he_o have_v before_o speak_v as_o design_v a_o relation_n to_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o not_o to_o make_v or_o afford_v any_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o soul_n after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n philip._n 1.21_o for_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_n what_o i_o shall_v choose_v i_o wot_v not_o for_o i_o be_o in_o a_o strait_a between_o two_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o depart_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v far_o better_a nevertheless_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v more_o needful_a for_o you_o this_o sound_n as_o if_o upon_o death_n of_o the_o body_n something_o be_v still_o leave_v in_o such_o a_o state_n and_o be_v as_o shall_v immediate_o thereupon_o go_v to_o be_v with_o christ_n and_o this_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o man_n soul_n subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n we_o read_v rev._n 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o 2_o tim._n 1.10_o christ_n abolish_v death_n and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_n through_o the_o gospel_n whence_o death_n now_o to_o the_o godly_a be_v but_o a_o sleep_n or_o rest_a in_o christ_n act_n 7.60_o stephen_n cry_v lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n and_o when_o he_o say_v this_o he_o fall_v asleep_a 1_o cor._n 15.6_o christ_n rise_v be_v see_v of_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n of_o who_o then_o some_o be_v fall_v asleep_o ver._n 18._o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n than_o they_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v ver._n 51._o we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v 1_o thess_n 4.15_o we_o who_o be_v alive_a at_o our_o lord_n be_v come_v shall_v not_o prevent_v they_o who_o be_v asleep_a ver._n 14._o but_o those_o who_o sleep_n in_o jesus_n shall_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o 2_o thess_n 1.6_o it_o be_v righteous_a with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o who_o be_v trouble_v rest_v with_o we_o when_o jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n seem_v this_o rest_n with_o we_o must_v be_v future_a to_o this_o world_n and_o most_o likely_a in_o death_n heb._n 4.3_o we_o who_o have_v believe_v do_v enter_v into_o rest_n ver._n 9_o there_o remain_v a_o rest_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n ver._n 10._o a_o cease_v from_o our_o own_o work_n as_o god_n do_v from_o he_o and_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o enter_v into_o this_o rest_n seem_v proper_o a_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o job_n testify_v there_o the_o weary_a be_v at_o rest_n upon_o the_o evidence_n thus_o quote_v by_o we_o it_o seem_v our_o prove_v text_n may_v be_v construe_v in_o this_o manner_n i_o know_v that_o to_o die_v be_v gain_n and_o for_o i_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o expectation_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n be_v far_o better_a but_o for_o i_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v more_o needful_a for_o you_o and_o this_o consideration_n put_v i_o into_o a_o straight_a between_o two_o thing_n so_o as_o what_o i_o shall_v choose_v i_o wot_v not_o and_o doubtless_o it_o be_v better_a and_o far_o more_o easy_a and_o desirable_a for_o a_o godly_a man_n to_o sleep_v and_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o christ_n than_o to_o be_v in_o the_o trouble_n temptation_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n as_o s._n paul_n be_v when_o he_o be_v in_o it_o daniel_n 12.13_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o go_v thy_o way_n till_o the_o end_n be_v for_o thou_o shall_v rest_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o lot_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n and_o this_o have_v be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o all_o age_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n have_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v that_o the_o day_n of_o a_o man_n death_n be_v better_a than_o that_o of_o his_o birth_n and_o if_o general_o how_o much_o better_a than_o must_v it_o need_v be_v for_o a_o good_a christian_a to_o depart_v and_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o christ_n lie_v down_o in_o a_o sure_a faith_n and_o steadfast_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n when_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v defend_v from_o hevean_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n for_o then_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o and_o be_v catch_v up_o into_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v they_o ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n what_o earthly_a thing_n can_v be_v compare_v with_o such_o a_o state_n so_o much_o joy_n and_o so_o great_a a_o assuranee_n no_o wonder_n then_o that_o our_o apostle_n call_v his_o death_n a_o gain_n be_v then_o in_o a_o condition_n so_o to_o die_v and_o so_o he_o continue_v as_o he_o say_v 2_o tim._n 4.7_o i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v but_o it_o seem_v he_o do_v not_o expect_v it_o before_o that_o day_n the_o day_n of_o christ_n second_o come_v to_o reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o we_o conclude_v the_o apostle_n in_o our_o prove_v text_n intend_v rather_o a_o go_v to_o rest_n in_o christ_n than_o a_o go_n into_o heaven_n to_o he_o in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o separate_a soul_n heb._n 12.22_o you_o be_v come_v to_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a to_o god_n the_o judge_n and_o to_o jesus_n the_o mediator_n and_o to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n some_o have_v raise_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n from_o this_o text._n the_o word_n you_o be_v come_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n speak_v unto_o live_a people_n can_v be_v literal_o intend_v unless_o the_o word_n be_v intend_v of_o the_o doctrine_n viz._n you_o be_v come_v to_o a_o gospel_n or_o doctrine_n which_o teach_v to_o believe_v and_o expect_v such_o thing_n in_o future_a time_n or_o you_o be_v come_v to_o such_o thing_n in_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v better_a thing_n than_o appear_v at_o mount_n sinai_n so_o 2_o pet._n 3.12_o look_v for_o and_o haste_n unto_o the_o come_v of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o as_o in_o noah_n be_v time_n it_o be_v drown_v but_o we_o look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n and_o see_v you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n what_o manner_n of_o person_n ought_v you_o to_o be_v in_o all_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a this_o expound_v how_o we_o come_v to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n viz._n to_o that_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o expectation_n to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o enjoy_v at_o the_o come_v of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n without_o any_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o a_o soul_n in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n or_o discoverable_a intention_n concern_v it_o 1_o pet._n 3.19_o christ_n be_v quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n when_o noah_n prepare_v the_o ark._n to_o this_o we_o say_v the_o text_n be_v very_o mystical_a and_o obscure_a and_o so_o every_o part_n and_o sentence_n of_o it_o and_o what_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n or_o the_o preach_a to_o they_o we_o humble_o confess_v ignorance_n and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o know_v therefore_o the_o text_n and_o consequence_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o consideration_n of_o the_o more_o learned_a better_o verse_v in_o the_o write_n of_o father_n and_o commentator_n but_o till_o the_o mean_v of_o it_o
therefore_o may_v judge_v all_o thing_n but_o we_o can_v allow_v the_o present_a pretender_n among_o we_o to_o apply_v this_o to_o themselves_o or_o to_o any_o of_o they_o ver._n 16._o say_v we_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n viz._n by_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n not_o only_o by_o the_o letter_n nay_o from_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o by_o who_o the_o letter_n of_o what_o we_o call_v god_n word_n be_v dedicate_v and_o frame_v eph._n 3.3_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n give_v i_o and_o that_o by_o revelation_n god_n make_v know_v unto_o i_o the_o mystery_n viz._n that_o mystery_n intend_v in_o our_o present_a chapter_n col._n 1.26_o even_o the_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o all_o age_n and_o generation_n but_o be_v then_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o saint_n of_o that_o time_n eph._n 1.17_o i_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v give_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o revelation_n the_o eye_n of_o your_o understanding_n be_v enlighten_v that_o you_o may_v know_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o call_v and_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n galat._n 1.16_o it_o please_v god_n to_o call_v i_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o reveal_v his_o son_n in_o i_o that_o i_o may_v preach_v he_o ver._n 12._o i_o neither_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o man_n nor_o be_v i_o teach_v it_o but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o do_v he_o then_o consult_v with_o other_o apostle_n or_o his_o own_o flesh_n and_o blood_n about_o it_o but_o go_v into_o arabia_n far_o from_o other_o teacher_n act_n 8.26_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o philip_n say_v arise_v and_o go_v towards_o the_o south_n with_o other_o direction_n ver._n 29._o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o philip_n go_v near_o and_o join_v thyself_o to_o this_o chariot_n ver._n 39_o when_o they_o be_v come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o water_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n catch_v away_o philip_n and_o the_o eunuch_n see_v he_o no_o more_o act._n 10.19_o while_o peter_n think_v on_o the_o vision_n the_o spirit_n say_v to_o he_o behold_v three_o man_n seek_v thou_o arise_v and_o go_v with_o they_o for_o i_o have_v send_v they_o so_o chap._n 11.12_o the_o spirit_n bid_v i_o go_v with_o they_o nothing_o doubt_v act._n 13_o 2._o as_o at_o antioch_n they_o minister_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o fast_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v separate_v i_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n for_o the_o work_n whereunto_o i_o have_v appoint_v they_o act_n 16.6_o paul_n be_v forbid_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o asia_n ver._n 7._o and_o they_o assay_v to_o go_v into_o bythinia_n but_o the_o spirit_n suffer_v they_o not_o these_o text_n have_v be_v quote_v to_o evince_v and_o declare_v the_o manner_n and_o efficacy_n of_o god_n communicate_v his_o spirit_n in_o those_o time_n of_o which_o sort_n our_o present_a pretender_n to_o endowment_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v not_o a_o face_n to_o challenge_v any_o thing_n we_o return_v now_o to_o examination_n of_o our_o quote_v text_n and_o chapter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o which_o st._n paul_n here_o speak_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o a_o mystery_n ordain_v before_o the_o world_n unto_o our_o glory_n call_v eph._n 1._o the_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o age_n and_o generation_n but_o be_v make_v manifest_a to_o the_o saint_n of_o that_o time_n mention_v matth._n 16.17_o peter_n say_v to_o his_o master_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o jesus_n answer_v flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o unto_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n by_o christ_n and_o that_o jesus_n preach_v to_o the_o people_n be_v christ_n be_v the_o mystery_n of_o st._n paul_n intend_v in_o this_o text._n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n for_o have_v they_o know_v it_o they_o will_v not_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n this_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n that_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o sense_n or_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v but_o god_n have_v then_o reveal_v it_o by_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o that_o time_n who_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v know_v this_o mystery_n as_o a_o thing_n free_o give_v to_o they_o of_o god_n of_o which_o they_o speak_v in_o word_n teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o natural_a man_n or_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n can_v not_o find_v out_o or_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o receive_v this_o mystery_n by_o any_o help_n of_o nature_n or_o reason_n for_o this_o mystery_n will_v be_v foolishness_n to_o a_o natural_a man_n and_o can_v not_o be_v know_v by_o natural_a mean_n or_o ground_n of_o reason_n but_o must_v be_v spiritual_o discern_v by_o revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n know_v no_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o our_o lord_n to_z peter_z flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o to_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n have_v do_v it_o a_o thing_n which_o no_o other_o mean_n have_v power_n to_o do_v not_o man_n nature_n or_o his_o reason_n nothing_o can_v discover_v this_o to_o man_n but_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n every_o parcel_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v above_o the_o natural_a man_n capacity_n and_o comprehension_n what_o eye_n have_v ever_o see_v or_o ear_n hear_v or_o what_o heart_n have_v ever_o conceive_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v bear_v a_o child_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o man._n the_o virgin_n demand_v how_o can_v this_o thing_n be_v see_v i_o know_v not_o a_o man_n the_o natural_a man_n can_v not_o receive_v this_o small_a or_o least_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o man_n redemption_n but_o it_o will_v appear_v foolishness_n to_o he_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o trinity_n and_o second_o person_n in_o it_o unite_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o choose_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n to_o undergo_v contempt_n want_n pain_n and_o death_n and_o rise_v again_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o that_o his_o so_o do_v shall_v be_v expiatory_a for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o be_v so_o accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o not_o natural_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o this_o mystery_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o nor_o can_v his_o reason_n know_v or_o conceive_v they_o because_o they_o be_v and_o must_v be_v spiritual_o discern_v viz._n must_v come_v to_o be_v first_o know_v by_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n only_o our_o apostle_n text_n thus_o apply_v be_v not_o only_o firm_a and_o true_a but_o also_o plain_a and_o clear_a intelligible_a and_o rational_a which_o man_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o confound_v by_o take_v a_o dictum_fw-la secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la for_o a_o dictum_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la and_o apply_v what_o the_o apostle_n speak_v concern_v this_o great_a mystery_n and_o concern_v the_o first_o and_o eminent_a revelation_n of_o it_o to_o all_o occasion_n person_n and_o time_n without_o observe_v the_o measure_n of_o difference_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v between_o they_o concern_v which_o we_o say_v that_o although_o at_o the_o first_o time_n of_o make_v this_o great_a mystery_n know_v to_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o produce_v that_o effect_n save_v the_o only_a revelation_n of_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o same_o be_v perform_v according_o yet_o in_o a_o short_a process_n of_o time_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o mystery_n be_v teach_v accept_v and_o believe_v by_o natural_a man_n upon_o reasonable_a ground_n and_o without_o be_v count_v foolishness_n among_o they_o viz._n when_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n have_v reveal_v this_o mystery_n to_o peter_n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o other_o christian_n then_o they_o preach_v the_o same_o to_o other_o man_n and_o declare_v this_o mystery_n to_o they_o mark_v 16.23_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o preach_v every_o where_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v the_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v their_o auditor_n natural_a man_n have_v reason_n to_o consider_v the_o teacher_n the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o sign_n follow_v the_o teacher_n be_v man_n sober_a and_o pious_a not_o seek_v worldly_a interest_n ready_a to_o suffer_v for_o justify_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o without_o exception_n in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o life_n the_o doctrine_n be_v sublime_a say_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n the_o fact_n deliver_v of_o our_o lord_n birth_n life_n death_n resurrection_n ascension_n and_o descent_n of_o the_o
a_o soul_n to_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v if_o it_o think_v itself_o shall_v be_v extinguish_v i_o say_v no_o madness_n at_o all_o but_o a_o very_a reasonable_a and_o wise_a choice_n viz._n a_o desire_n to_o part_v with_o a_o troublesome_a and_o suffer_a life_n for_o the_o rest_n of_o death_n or_o sleep_v in_o christ_n in_o a_o assure_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n and_o of_o then_o receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n as_o paul_n case_n be_v and_o if_o our_o author_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n he_o love_v life_n better_a than_o ordinary_a he_o have_v also_o before_o say_v that_o the_o grave_n be_v a_o good_a hide_v place_n from_o the_o storm_n of_o the_o world_n which_o i_o there_o agree_v and_o so_o do_v most_o people_n pag._n 310._o cites_n 2_o tim._n 4.8_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n will_v be_v give_v to_o all_o who_o love_n christ_n appear_v i_o ask_v when_o shall_v this_o be_v do_v the_o text_n say_v at_o that_o day_n the_o author_n say_v this_o intend_v the_o day_n of_o man_n death_n no_o say_v i_o for_o that_o day_n intend_v one_o time_n appoint_v whereas_o day_n of_o death_n be_v divers_a and_o various_a therefore_o the_o day_n here_o intend_v the_o resurrection_n p._n 313._o say_v in_o death_n the_o soul_n attain_v its_o rest_n i_o say_v the_o man_n attain_v his_o rest_n in_o hope_n of_o a_o future_a happiness_n or_o fear_n of_o what_o may_v follow_v at_o that_o day_n pag._n 314._o say_v death_n final_o and_o certain_o cure_v seven_o several_a very_a great_a humane_a malady_n and_o therefore_o say_v i_o be_v much_o more_o desirable_a than_o a_o troublesome_a or_o afflict_a life_n pag._n 326._o say_v little_o do_v believer_n think_v what_o vision_n of_o god_n and_o ravish_a sight_n of_o christ_n the_o soul_n of_o their_o friend_n have_v when_o they_o be_v close_v their_o eye_n with_o tear_n i_o say_v little_a do_v our_o author_n know_v for_o their_o information_n in_o such_o case_n or_o for_o their_o comfort_n 1_o thes_n 4.13_o paul_n comfort_v people_n in_o such_o case_n by_o the_o hope_n only_o of_o a_o resurrection_n which_o give_v i_o a_o great_a assurance_n that_o he_o either_o know_v not_o of_o our_o author_n opinion_n or_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o he_o add_v evil_a day_n shall_v make_v god_n people_n willing_a to_o accept_v of_o a_o hide_v place_n in_o the_o grave_a as_o a_o special_a favour_n from_o god_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o believe_v it_o often_o do_v so_o pag._n 322._o cites_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o that_o may_v make_v paul_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ._n viz._n to_o rest_n or_o sleep_v in_o he_o pag._n 329._o cites_n heb._n 9.27_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o that_o the_o judgement_n i_o say_v this_o intend_v one_o judgement_n viz._n the_o last_o and_o that_o no_o intermediate_v judgement_n can_v be_v prove_v pag._n 334._o cites_n 1_o pet._n 3_o 19_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n and_o he_o say_v there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o this_o text_n and_o that_o aestius_n reckon_v no_o less_o than_o ten_o exposition_n of_o it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a difficult_a scripture_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o almost_o all_o interpreter_n pag._n 335._o say_v what_o be_v call_v a_o soul_n whilst_o in_o the_o body_n after_o separation_n be_v proper_o call_v a_o spirit_n i_o deny_v then_o that_o ever_o it_o can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o spirit_n pag._n 339._o he_o say_v conscience_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o prime_a guide_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v of_o the_o man_n he_o say_v the_o will_n as_o potent_a as_o it_o be_v move_v not_o until_o the_o judgement_n come_v to_o a_o conclusion_n and_o this_o i_o agree_v pag._n 340._o he_o say_v every_o soul_n come_v to_o its_o particular_a judgement_n immediate_o after_o death_n to_o prove_v this_o he_o cites_n heb._n 9.27_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o that_o the_o judgement_n how_o this_o prove_v every_o man_n particular_a judgement_n at_o death_n i_o do_v not_o perceive_v it_o seem_v rather_o all_o man_n must_v die_v before_o this_o judgement_n and_o when_o all_o be_v dead_a than_o this_o judgement_n but_o there_o be_v no_o application_n of_o it_o to_o a_o particular_a judgement_n then_o he_o cites_n proverb_n 11.7_o when_o a_o wicked_a man_n die_v his_o expectation_n shall_v perish_v and_o the_o hope_n of_o unjust_a man_n perish_v i_o demand_v how_o this_o prove_v a_o particular_a judgement_n after_o each_o man_n death_n then_o he_o cites_n matth._n 7.22_o many_o will_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n have_v not_o we_o do_v great_a work_n in_o thy_o name_n then_o will_v i_o profess_v to_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o thus_o he_o prove_v a_o particular_a judgement_n many_o will_v say_v in_o that_o day_n the_o great_a day_n and_o then_o i_o will_v say_v to_o they_o to_o those_o many_o such_o scripture_n as_o these_o he_o be_v force_v to_o use_v for_o proof_n of_o his_o particular_a judgement_n not_o that_o likely_a he_o or_o any_o man_n can_v think_v they_o good_a proof_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o because_o this_o sort_n of_o judgement_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o a_o separate_a soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n without_o this_o sort_n of_o judgement_n there_o can_v be_v no_o truth_n in_o their_o tenet_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v prove_v or_o yield_v they_o can_v do_v it_o and_o i_o think_v he_o be_v as_o good_a not_o have_v offer_v at_o it_o as_o to_o have_v do_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n but_o neither_o i_o nor_o it_o seem_v he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v it_o better_o pag._n 350._o cites_n heb._n 4.3_o we_o which_o have_v believe_v do_v enter_v into_o rest._n i_o say_v this_o intend_v rest_n from_o their_o labour_n as_o the_o revelation_n express_v it_o and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v heaven_n in_o it_o pag._n 359._o say_v nothing_o more_o sure_a or_o awful_a than_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n i_o agree_v it_o pag._n 361._o cites_n matth._n 16.26_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n our_o great_a difference_n upon_o this_o text_n will_v be_v what_o be_v here_o intend_a by_o the_o word_n or_o term_n of_o soul_n i_o say_v that_o as_o in_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o other_o place_n so_o in_o this_o place_n the_o word_n soul_n intend_v the_o man_n self_n or_o his_o person_n or_o life_n ver._n 25._o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o but_o he_o that_o lose_v it_o for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v find_v it_o then_o follow_v our_o text_n with_o connexion_n for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o life_n and_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n or_o life_n once_o lose_v it_o can_v be_v redeem_v or_o recover_v nor_o recompense_v by_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n yet_o he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v find_v it_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a and_o as_o heb._n 11._o 35._o people_n be_v torture_v not_o accept_v deliverance_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n pag._n 362._o he_o quote_v a_o say_v to_o win_v venice_n and_o he_o hang_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o it_o what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v any_o man_n so_o say_v he_o of_o get_v a_o vast_a treasure_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o life_n and_o i_o agree_v and_o say_v when_o a_o man_n be_v dead_a what_o good_a can_v all_o the_o world_n do_v he_o and_o this_o i_o take_v for_o the_o true_a mean_v of_o this_o text_n and_o our_o lord_n show_v how_o one_o that_o lose_v life_n for_o his_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o ver._n 26._o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o sound_v strong_o in_o exclusion_n of_o the_o particular_a judgement_n before_o speak_v of_o pag._n 363._o he_o magnify_v the_o expression_n or_o the_o term_n soul_n in_o this_o text_n and_o say_v that_o rock_n of_o diamond_n be_v not_o worth_a it_o i_o say_v they_o be_v not_o worth_a any_o man_n life_n to_o he_o and_o this_o the_o devil_n know_v when_o he_o say_v all_o that_o a_o man_n have_v will_v he_o give_v for_o his_o life_n
accrue_v in_o defence_n by_o overthrow_v or_o weaken_v of_o the_o opposite_a tenet_n i_o shall_v here_o begin_v to_o sharpen_v the_o point_n and_o turn_v the_o edge_n of_o argument_n against_o the_o opposite_a not_o so_o much_o party_n as_o opinion_n i_o begin_v this_o argument_n arguendo_fw-la &_o negativis_fw-la and_o i_o say_v first_o that_o humane_a soul_n immateriality_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o catechism_n public_o use_v &_o authorise_a by_o our_o church_n second_o it_o be_v not_o impose_v by_o any_o of_o our_o thirty_o nine_o article_n three_o it_o be_v not_o express_o require_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o any_o of_o our_o three_o most_o ancient_a creed_n four_o we_o meet_v not_o with_o any_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n that_o recommend_v it_o five_o in_o the_o whole_a bible_n there_o be_v not_o one_o plain_a positive_a affirmation_n that_o a_o humane_a soul_n do_v separately_z subsist_v after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v immaterial_a or_o immortal_a nor_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v intelligent_a six_o there_o be_v no_o sentence_n in_o the_o bible_n no_o nor_o word_n which_o doctrinal_o do_v teach_v the_o immateriality_n viz._n who_o be_v principal_a intent_n at_o their_o delivery_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o immateriality_n for_o proof_n of_o this_o last_o assertion_n there_o seem_v requisite_a a_o examination_n of_o the_o most_o important_a particular_n allege_v for_o proof_n of_o this_o tenet_n matth._n 10.28_o fear_v not_o they_o who_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n i_o take_v the_o doctrine_n principal_o intend_v in_o this_o text_n to_o be_v a_o teach_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o new_o institute_v to_o be_v bold_a in_o their_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o their_o so_o do_v to_o fear_v more_o the_o power_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o of_o man_n and_o with_o this_o concur_v luke_o 12.4_o both_o evangelist_n testify_v this_o and_o agree_v full_o in_o it_o if_o matthew_n text_n have_v intend_v to_o teach_v the_o immateriality_n this_o short_a expression_n seem_v a_o very_a transient_a or_o even_o a_o superficial_a manner_n of_o do_v it_o have_v that_o therefore_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o this_o text_n it_o seem_v some_o far_a declaration_n will_v here_o have_v be_v make_v of_o it_o in_o verse_n 32._o and_o 33._o pursue_v the_o same_o discourse_n or_o doctrine_n our_o lord_n say_v those_o who_o confess_v he_o he_o will_v confess_v before_o his_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o those_o who_o deny_v he_o he_o will_v so_o deny_v which_o to_o my_o apprehension_n intimate_v and_o intend_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o last_o day_n where_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o judge_n and_o own_o and_o disow_v as_o he_o please_v we_o find_v luke_n word_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o this_o doctrine_n do_v not_o mention_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n or_o kill_v the_o body_n without_o kill_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o main_a intent_n of_o the_o doctrine_n viz._n fearing_n god_n more_o than_o man_n they_o agree_v and_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o in_o word_n import_v the_o separate_a state_n they_o differ_v ergo_fw-la the_o main_a intent_n of_o this_o text_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o fear_v of_o god_n more_o than_o man_n and_o the_o word_n import_v a_o separate_a state_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v but_o collateral_a and_o st._n luke_n deliversng_v the_o main_a doctrine_n without_o these_o word_n or_o other_o of_o like_a import_n it_o seem_v st._n matthew_n word_n which_o be_v of_o that_o import_n may_v pass_v for_o a_o way_n of_o word_v this_o doctrine_n in_o expression_n suitable_a to_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n another_o text_n allege_v for_o proof_n of_o immateriality_n be_v luk._n 23.43_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o thief_n to_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n such_o proof_n of_o the_o immateriality_n as_o arise_v from_o hence_o seem_v clear_o no_o more_o but_o a_o collection_n upon_o inference_n for_o there_o appear_v no_o intent_n in_o this_o text_n to_o teach_v that_o doctrine_n viz._n of_o the_o immateriality_n verse_n 46._o of_o the_o same_o chap._n father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n and_o st._n stephen_n lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n it_o seem_v be_v not_o speak_v with_o intent_n to_o teach_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n or_o separate_a subsistence_n but_o as_o a_o recommend_v of_o themselves_o to_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o the_o uttermost_a extremity_n of_o their_o condition_n the_o parable_n of_o dives_n luk._n 16.19_o seem_v to_o i_o speak_v principal_o upon_o this_o occasion_n ver._n 14._o our_o lord_n discourse_n be_v deride_v by_o the_o pharisee_n he_o answer_v they_o god_n know_v your_o heart_n for_o that_o which_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n be_v abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n this_o verse_n 15._o and_o ver._n 19_o begin_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n perfect_o proper_a for_o the_o illustration_n of_o this_o assertion_n for_o what_o more_o high_o esteem_v among_o man_n than_o the_o condition_n of_o dives_n and_o what_o more_o miserable_a than_o that_o of_o lazarus_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n the_o case_n be_v quite_o contrary_a i_o say_v the_o main_a design_n and_o intent_n of_o this_o parable_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o illustration_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o not_o to_o teach_v any_o thing_n concern_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n of_o which_o it_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o common_a conception_n of_o that_o time_n phil._n 1.21_o to_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_v i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o depart_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v far_o better_a but_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v more_o needful_a for_o you_o here_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o my_o understanding_n any_o intent_n to_o teach_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n but_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n be_v more_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o more_o happy_a than_o a_o state_n of_o life_n in_o this_o world_n '_o special_o one_o like_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n then_o be_v paul_n the_o age_a and_o a_o prisoner_n chap._n 2.17_o ready_a to_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o service_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o faith_n who_o will_v not_o choose_v a_o death_n in_o christ_n rather_o than_o such_o a_o life_n and_o will_v not_o abide_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o people_n and_o service_n of_o the_o gospel_n here_o appear_v no_o intent_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o teach_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n mat._n 16.26_o of_o gain_v the_o world_n and_o lose_v man_n soul_n i_o hold_v evident_o unprove_v so_o 2_o cor._n 5.8_o of_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n have_v very_o little_a appearance_n of_o proof_n and_o no_o semblance_n of_o intent_n to_o teach_v the_o immateriality_n these_o eight_o text_n i_o take_v for_o the_o most_o allege_a and_o the_o most_o prove_v the_o immateriality_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n in_o which_o i_o have_v pretend_v to_o show_v that_o they_o intend_v not_o as_o their_o prime_a design_n to_o prove_v or_o maintain_v the_o immateriality_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n and_o i_o think_v this_o go_v far_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o assertion_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o sentence_n or_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n who_o principal_a intent_n at_o their_o delivery_n be_v to_o assert_v or_o teach_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n and_o here_o i_o finish_v my_o proof_n ex_fw-la negativis_fw-la the_o belief_n of_o the_o immateriality_n be_v not_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n nor_o to_o be_v exact_v of_o any_o man._n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o positive_a proof_n import_v a_o great_a probability_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v material_a and_o extinguishable_a then_o immaterial_a and_o separately_z subsist_v intend_v which_o i_o say_v if_o after_o death_n a_o man_n soul_n obtain_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n and_o be_v at_o great_a liberty_n than_o it_o be_v live_v in_o the_o man_n and_o in_o a_o full_a state_n and_o capacity_n of_o act_v enjoy_v and_o suffer_v then_o the_o call_v man_n death_n a_o sleep_n and_o a_o rest_n appear_v a_o very_a improper_a and_o even_o a_o mislead_v sort_n of_o expression_n but_o the_o scripture_n in_o very_a many_o place_n call_v death_n a_o sleep_n and_o a_o rest_n ergo_fw-la if_o the_o soul_n so_o subsist_v after_o death_n as_o before_o be_v say_v the_o scripture_n in_o its_o term_n death_n a_o sleep_n and_o a_o rest_n speak_v very_o improper_o and_o somewhat_o mislead_v in_o very_a many_o place_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o major_a proposition_n i_o say_v those_o who_o do_v sensible_o perceive_v and_o actual_o understand_v remember_v believe_v and_o will_v can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o a_o
than_o free_o and_o fair_o flow_v from_o the_o word_n and_o intent_n of_o these_o scripture_n well_o but_o still_o there_o be_v four_o text_n not_o instance_a in_o and_o which_o seem_v to_o make_v appear_v a_o intent_n to_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n concern_v they_o i_o say_v that_o mat._n 10._o &_o phil._n 1._o show_v not_o a_o principal_a intent_n so_o to_o teach_v that_o of_o mat._n teach_v principal_o to_o fear_n god_n more_o than_o man_n the_o philip._n intend_v principal_o to_o show_v that_o paul_n will_v have_v christ_n magnify_v by_o his_o life_n or_o by_o his_o death_n and_o that_o it_o be_v indifferent_a to_o he_o by_o whether_o of_o these_o mean_v that_o end_n shall_v be_v attain_v by_o death_n will_v be_v easy_a and_o a_o more_o gain_n to_o he_o but_o by_o life_n he_o think_v may_v be_v more_o profitable_a and_o beneficial_a to_o they_o and_o the_o church_n this_o seem_v the_o principal_a intent_n and_o scope_n of_o this_o text_n and_o not_o to_o teach_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n or_o immateriality_n of_o soul_n mat._n 16._o about_o gain_v the_o world_n and_o lose_v the_o soul_n seem_v to_o show_v a_o intent_n of_o teach_v concern_v soul_n and_o the_o hinge_v of_o its_o mean_v turn_v upon_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n soul_n in_o this_o place_n our_o lord_n previous_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n and_o follow_v he_o expect_v tribulation_n in_o his_o doctrine_n for_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o whosoever_o will_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n my_o sense_n of_o this_o text_n be_v that_o the_o word_n soul_n and_o life_n be_v consignificant_a as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v he_o that_o save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o lose_v it_o shall_v find_v it_o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o life_n or_o what_o can_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o life_n if_o one_o lose_v his_o life_n the_o gain_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n can_v do_v he_o no_o good_a nor_o make_v he_o a_o recompense_n for_o it_o and_o the_o devil_n can_v say_v all_z that_o a_o man_n have_v will_v he_o give_v for_o his_o life_n nor_o will_v any_o man_n of_o sense_n take_v the_o world_n in_o exchange_n for_o his_o life_n for_o that_o the_o world_n be_v of_o no_o use_n or_o value_v to_o the_o dead_a so_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o text_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o word_n or_o term_n which_o i_o have_v before_o plentiful_o prove_v to_o signify_v and_o intend_v very_o often_o the_o person_n the_o affection_n the_o intellect_n and_o the_o life_n and_o i_o take_v it_o here_o to_o intend_v the_o life_n of_o the_o person_n and_o not_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o forma_fw-la informans_fw-la of_o the_o man._n to_o the_o parable_n of_o dives_n luk._n 16._o i_o have_v full_o speak_v and_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o parable_n not_o explain_v or_o expound_v by_o our_o lord_n that_o we_o know_v of_o i_o take_v it_o speak_v in_o illustration_n of_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n deliver_v but_o three_o verse_n before_o viz._n that_o which_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n be_v abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o be_v very_o proper_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o the_o discourse_v hold_v in_o it_o between_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n be_v suit_v to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o people_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v and_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o true_a relation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n i_o conceive_v the_o text_n 10._o mat._n and_o this_o parable_n to_o be_v like_o the_o two_o pillar_n of_o dagon_n house_n the_o main_a prop_n of_o the_o immaterial_a opinion_n upon_o which_o the_o whole_a weight_n of_o it_o lean_v prop_v also_o by_o the_o other_o text_n before_o rehearse_v but_o weak_o and_o i_o leave_v the_o consideration_n to_o such_o as_o shall_v happen_v to_o peruse_v what_o have_v here_o be_v collect_v and_o put_v together_o intend_v single_o the_o search_n and_o manifestation_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n our_o author_n flavel_n lay_v the_o foundation_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n upon_o moses_n his_o text_n quote_v pag._n 1._o of_o his_o book_n viz._n gen._n 2.7_o god_n form_v man_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o man_n become_v a_o live_v soul_n and_o the_o word_n of_o this_o text_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o interpret_v and_o by_o his_o so_o do_v verefy_v the_o old_a say_v mala_fw-la interpretatio_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la for_o thus_o he_o interpret_v this_o text_n say_v he_o prove_v and_o intend_v that_o god_n do_v then_o create_v a_o spirit_n or_o soul_n out_o of_o nothing_o for_o man_n viz._n a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a substance_n or_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v either_o first_o create_v and_o then_o infuse_v or_o infundendo_fw-la be_v create_v in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o infusion_n i_o will_v raise_v no_o dispute_n with_o he_o about_o the_o mode_n or_o manner_n of_o his_o intend_a creation_n be_v it_o create_v and_o infuse_v or_o infundendo_fw-la create_v but_o i_o say_v that_o either_o way_n take_v it_o be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o letter_n or_o word_n of_o the_o text_n for_o therein_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o spirit_n or_o creation_n out_o of_o nothing_o or_o any_o sort_n of_o creation_n whatsoever_o so_o his_o interpretation_n be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o word_n or_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n and_o that_o it_o be_v more_o oppose_v by_o the_o sense_n and_o mean_v of_o the_o text_n than_o it_o be_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o text_n or_o moses_n have_v intend_v or_o mean_v that_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n breathe_v into_o adam_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o such_o a_o spirit_n it_o will_v have_v be_v more_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o text_n or_o at_o least_o the_o propriety_n of_o speak_v will_v have_v require_v to_o have_v have_v it_o express_v after_o another_o manner_n viz._n god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o it_o or_o that_o viz._n that_o breath_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o the_o text_n be_v otherwise_o word_v it_o neither_o say_v nor_o intend_v that_o the_o breath_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o that_o the_o man_n do_v so_o and_o i_o say_v far_o that_o by_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n be_v not_o intend_v that_o he_o become_v a_o soul_n mere_o or_o single_o call_v by_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o expound_v by_o actus_fw-la primus_fw-la corporis_fw-la organici_fw-la not_o such_o a_o bare_a soul_n without_o a_o body_n a_o thing_n never_o yet_o know_v in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la but_o a_o live_a soul_n in_o composito_n viz._n a_o live_a person_n man_n become_v a_o live_a person_n heb._n 10.39_o we_o be_v of_o they_o that_o believe_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n viz._n of_o the_o person_n for_o all_o agree_v the_o body_n shall_v have_v a_o salvation_n as_o well_o as_o he_o soul_n i_o perceive_v that_o the_o term_n of_o soul_n very_o oft_o in_o scripture_n intend_v to_o signify_v the_o person_n be_v a_o great_a occasion_n of_o mislead_v the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o reader_n induce_v they_o to_o apply_v to_o the_o single_a and_o bare_a soul_n those_o say_n which_o be_v intend_v of_o or_o for_o the_o person_n so_o be_v the_o case_n now_o cite_v heb._n 10._o and_o so_o in_o our_o text_n now_o examine_v and_o because_o the_o correct_a and_o emendation_n of_o this_o mistake_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o very_o great_a importance_n i_o have_v before_o give_v many_o instance_n of_o the_o usage_n in_o scripture_n expression_n in_o a_o multitude_n of_o place_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o half_a of_o those_o that_o i_o may_v have_v do_v and_o because_o this_o truth_n can_v be_v make_v too_o apparent_a and_o with_o great_a difficulty_n plain_a enough_o i_o will_v touch_v a_o few_o instance_n of_o it_o again_o in_o this_o place_n gen_n 46.26_o all_o the_o soul_n that_o come_v out_o of_o jacob_n loin_n into_o egypt_n be_v 66_o and_o joseph_n son_n be_v two_o soul_n so_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o jacob_n house_n be_v 70_o count_v jacob_n and_o joseph_n here_o soul_n can_v intend_v nothing_o but_o person_n act_n 27.37_o in_o paul_n voyage_n towards_o rome_n and_o shipwreck_n at_o malta_n there_o be_v in_o all_o in_o the_o ship_n 276_o soul_n viz._n person_n isa_n
hare_n fox_n and_o other-like_a pursue_v creature_n be_v invent_v and_o act_v and_o the_o like_a for_o ape_n and_o elephant_n and_o their_o docility_n and_o that_o of_o horse_n and_o dog_n and_o the_o very_a infect_v wasp_n and_o serpent_n know_v their_o power_n to_o hurt_n and_o use_v they_o according_o without_o that_o any_o man_n be_v or_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o give_v a_o full_a and_o true_a account_n of_o the_o mean_n power_n and_o next_o natural_a cause_n of_o such_o action_n or_o by_o what_o direct_a medium_n they_o be_v perform_v shall_v we_o then_o go_v about_o to_o cover_v our_o ignorance_n of_o the_o immediate_a power_n and_o act_n in_o man_n head_n and_o brain_n by_o invent_v for_o he_o a_o unknown_a and_o unprovable_a spiritual_a be_v reside_a in_o he_o we_o know_v not_o where_o come_v into_o he_o we_o know_v neither_o when_o nor_o from_o whence_o guide_v and_o rule_v we_o know_v not_o how_o sit_v perhaps_o in_o majesty_n in_o the_o head_n but_o reject_v or_o overpower_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o natural_a inhabitant_n the_o affection_n and_o passion_n of_o it_o solomon_n be_v wise_a than_o so_o to_o be_v entangle_v prov._n 20.12_o say_v the_o hear_n ear_n and_o the_o see_a eye_n the_o lord_n have_v make_v even_o both_o of_o they_o seem_v a_o tacit_a confession_n that_o he_o know_v not_o how_o and_o eccles_n 8_o 17._o make_v a_o open_a confession_n that_o man_n can_v find_v out_o the_o work_n of_o god_n not_o those_o which_o be_v of_o thy_o world_n the_o wise_a of_o man_n can_v do_v it_o and_o my_o lord_n bacon_n among_o the_o wise_a of_o our_o naturalist_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o advancement_n of_o learning_n pag._n 200._o that_o a_o rational_a account_n of_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v expect_v from_o philosophy_n because_o the_o thing_n be_v supernatural_a and_o inspire_a whence_o it_o seem_v we_o seek_v in_o vain_a to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v or_o whence_o it_o be_v or_o where_o it_o be_v or_o why_o it_o be_v since_o we_o can_v know_v that_o it_o be_v but_o from_o the_o divine_a fountain_n of_o faith_n and_o revelation_n in_o his_o opinion_n but_o say_v he_o man_n have_v a_o sensible_a soul_n as_o the_o organ_n to_o his_o rational_a which_o may_v rather_o be_v call_v a_o spirit_n be_v a_o corporal_a substance_n attenuate_v by_o heat_n and_o make_v invisible_a of_o a_o flamy_a airy_a nature_n nourish_v part_n by_o a_o oily_a and_o part_n by_o a_o watery_a substance_n spread_v all_o over_o the_o body_n and_o repair_v continual_o by_o spirituous_a blood_n we_o may_v perceive_v why_o he_o forbear_v to_o describe_v or_o discourse_v far_o of_o the_o self-subsisting_a soul_n because_o it_o be_v not_o natural_a but_o inspire_a and_o of_o which_o a_o reason_n therefore_o can_v be_v require_v to_o give_v any_o tolerable_a account_n seem_v tantamount_n to_o say_v he_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o thing_n nor_o will_v make_v any_o far_a inquiry_n into_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o but_o be_v content_a to_o accept_v of_o the_o opinion_n as_o of_o a_o notion_n which_o have_v long_o go_v for_o currant_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v grow_v the_o general_n if_o not_o the_o universal_a opinion_n among_o christian_n of_o the_o late_a age_n but_o if_o we_o credit_v baxter_n our_o author_n he_o tell_v we_o pag._n 72._o that_o some_o think_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v material_a of_o a_o pure_a substance_n than_o thing_n visible_a and_o that_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o its_o substantiality_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pure_a as_o they_o call_v it_o spiritual_a materiality_n and_o thus_o think_v not_o only_a tertullian_n but_o almost_o all_o the_o old_a greek_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o father_n that_o write_v of_o it_o and_o most_o of_o the_o latin_a or_o very_o many_o of_o they_o and_o there_o be_v few_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n or_o father_n who_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o some_o way_n material_a and_o now_o say_v i_o upon_o what_o new_a reason_n or_o revelation_n be_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o old_a father_n of_o the_o church_n come_v to_o be_v change_v why_o shall_v not_o we_o think_v now_o of_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o father_n and_o primimitive_a church_n and_o christian_n think_v of_o it_o it_o seem_v we_o neither_o pretend_v any_o new_a revelation_n for_o it_o nor_o have_v find_v out_o any_o either_o scripture_n or_o reason_n which_o be_v not_o know_v to_o they_o it_o may_v be_v not_o unapt_o surmise_v that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o call_v the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o and_o beginning_n of_o the_o seven_o century_n there_o rise_v a_o conceit_n in_o his_o church_n from_o a_o story_n tell_v to_o that_o pope_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o centum_fw-la cellae_n that_o christian_a soul_n be_v put_v to_o penance_n and_o suffering_n after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n for_o expiate_v of_o sin_n commit_v whilst_o they_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n whence_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o they_o first_o out_o of_o a_o charitable_a design_n and_o then_o alm_n come_v to_o be_v distribute_v likewise_o on_o their_o behalf_n then_o the_o clergy_n and_o poor_a people_n begin_v to_o be_v hire_v and_o have_v money_n distribute_v and_o give_v to_o they_o for_o such_o purpose_n and_o in_o time_n there_o come_v a_o place_n to_o be_v assign_v where_o such_o penance_n be_v think_v to_o be_v perform_v or_o penalty_n for_o purge_v of_o sin_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v suffer_v and_o this_o opinion_n become_v beneficial_a to_o the_o poor_a and_o profitable_a to_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o church_n and_o go_v on_o like_o such_o kind_n of_o project_n increase_v till_o it_o grow_v up_o to_o a_o perfect_a purgatorial_n fire_n over_o which_o his_o holiness_n take_v the_o supreme_a command_n which_o he_o have_v be_v repute_v to_o enjoy_v for_o the_o space_n of_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n last_o pass_v to_o the_o great_a enlargement_n of_o his_o reputation_n and_o revenue_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o son_n and_o servant_n the_o clergy_n and_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n and_o this_o have_v now_o continue_v for_o about_o the_o space_n of_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n time_n enough_o to_o radicate_v and_o fix_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o self-subsisting_a soul_n in_o all_o believer_n derive_v under_o that_o church_n or_o that_o have_v be_v subject_v thereunto_o but_o whatsoever_o the_o cause_n have_v be_v of_o the_o present_a christian_n decline_v and_o swerve_v from_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a father_n in_o this_o point_n it_o seem_v the_o state_n of_o this_o question_n deserve_v to_o be_v diligent_o review_v and_o consider_v our_o author_n undertake_v to_o prove_v this_o self-subsisting_a spiritual_a substance_n in_o man_n from_o three_o topic_n or_o ground_n viz._n 1._o from_o reason_n or_o nature_n 2._o from_o moral_a congruity_n 3._o from_o express_a place_n and_o text_n of_o scripture_n how_o concise_a and_o short_a he_o be_v both_o in_o the_o word_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o reason_v in_o this_o point_n any_o who_o will_v bestow_v the_o pain_n of_o peruse_v he_o will_v evident_o and_o easy_o perceive_v all_o that_o he_o say_v in_o proof_n from_o this_o topick_n have_v be_v true_o relate_v before_o and_o without_o far_a descant_n thereon_o it_o seem_v less_o can_v hardly_o be_v say_v than_o id_fw-la aliquid_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la and_o he_o leave_v his_o important_a undertake_n prove_v such_o a_o soul_n in_o man_n from_o reason_n or_o nature_n with_o turn_v himself_o about_o to_o matter_n and_o thing_n or_o rather_o to_o conceit_n and_o fantasy_n of_o very_a small_a value_n as_o page_z 13._o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o individual_a spirit_n or_o be_v a_o act_n or_o emanation_n of_o god_n or_o of_o some_o universal_a soul_n in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n pag._n 15._o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v annihilate_v by_o death_n and_o then_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o dissolution_n of_o its_o part_n pag._n 17._o then_o whether_o soul_n subsist_v after_o death_n do_v sleep_v as_o the_o body_n do_v till_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 21._o whether_o soul_n subsist_v after_o death_n and_o not_o sleep_v shall_v continue_v distinct_a being_n or_o fall_v into_o one_o common_a soul_n or_o be_v unite_v to_o god_n and_o so_o lose_v their_o individuation_n and_o separate_v be_v upon_o this_o question_n pag._n 22._o he_o cite_v s._n austin_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la put_v the_o question_n whether_o soul_n be_v all_o but_o one_o and_o not_o many_o but_o that_o he_o utter_o deny_v 2._o whether_o they_o be_v many_o and_o not_o one_o and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o well_o digest_v 3._o whether_o they_o be_v at_o once_o both_o one_o and_o many_o and_o though_o this_o may_v seem_v ridiculous_a yet_o he_o be_v most_o incline_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o
competitor_n share_v in_o the_o command_n and_o government_n and_o this_o sine_z fine_z the_o contest_v have_v no_o determination_n but_o by_o dissolution_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la and_o this_o prove_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v of_o nature_n and_o so_o do_v the_o universality_n of_o it_o there_o be_v not_o a_o humane_a soul_n right_o constitute_v wherein_o this_o contest_v be_v not_o full_o evident_a our_o author_n have_v well_o foresee_v that_o his_o definition_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o true_a spiritual_a incorporeal_a substance_n will_v be_v easy_o grant_v but_o his_o word_n immaterial_a be_v that_o which_o will_v make_v the_o boggle_v and_o therefore_o he_o promise_v diligent_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o but_o in_o this_o argument_n we_o meet_v not_o with_o any_o mention_n of_o that_o quality_n and_o therefore_o conclude_v we_o be_v not_o at_o all_o press_v by_o it_o pag._n 710._o he_o propound_v three_o rule_n upon_o material_a form_n 1._o that_o they_o act_n not_o but_o when_o they_o be_v form_n of_o some_o body_n 2._o they_o be_v that_o principle_n by_o which_o the_o compositum_fw-la be_v act_v and_o do_v not_o work_v to_o effect_v but_o by_o the_o compositum_fw-la 3._o they_o be_v limit_v in_o their_o extent_n not_o reach_v far_o than_o the_o subject_a in_o which_o they_o be_v and_o to_o these_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v he_o argue_v the_o humane_a soul_n be_v not_o only_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o man_n do_v understand_v but_o such_o soul_n do_v understand_v by_o herself_o for_o this_o he_o cite_v arist_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o i_o have_v search_v that_o chapter_n but_o do_v not_o find_v it_o there_o and_o however_o do_v not_o grant_v or_o believe_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a 2._o he_o argue_v the_o sense_n take_v harm_n by_o a_o over-vehement_a force_n of_o their_o object_n but_o the_o intellect_n do_v not_o so_o this_o he_o have_v from_o aristotle_n hence_o he_o conclude_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immaterial_a which_o we_o pass_v for_o a_o apparent_a non_fw-fr sequitur_fw-la 3._o he_o argue_v the_o less_o our_o mind_n be_v employ_v in_o external_n thing_n the_o more_o apt_a and_o ready_a they_o be_v to_o work_v this_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v the_o more_o exercise_v and_o practise_v the_o more_o apt_a and_o ready_a they_o be_v for_o those_o thing_n be_v they_o worldly_a or_o contemplative_a 4._o he_o argue_v the_o soul_n understand_v and_o know_v itself_o its_o power_n and_o action_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o substance_n differ_v from_o the_o body_n all_o this_o i_o deny_v 5._o argue_v the_o intellect_n can_v apprehend_v all_o finite_a thing_n but_o if_o it_o be_v material_a it_o can_v not_o discern_v one_o matter_n from_o another_o nor_o know_v their_o difference_n this_o i_o say_v the_o beast_n do_v easy_o perform_v 6._o argue_v the_o intellect_n perceive_v abstract_v thing_n and_o immaterial_a as_o god_n angel_n universals_z and_o mathematical_a notion_n therefore_o it_o be_v immaterial_a we_o answer_v universals_z and_o notion_n be_v derive_v from_o particular_n and_o material_n and_o what_o man_n know_v of_o god_n and_o angel_n come_v from_o revelation_n and_o sense_n of_o all_o which_o a_o material_a spirit_n act_v in_o and_o with_o fit_a organ_n be_v enough_o capable_a 7._o argue_v quicquid_fw-la recipitur_fw-la fit_a ad_fw-la modum_fw-la recipientis_fw-la but_o the_o intellect_n turn_v all_o into_o universals_z and_o immaterial_a notion_n this_o i_o deny_v can_v do_v it_o i_o grant_v it_o be_v capable_a both_o of_o particular_n and_o universals_z seem_v alike_o capable_a not_o one_o more_o natural_a than_o the_o other_o whence_o the_o modus_fw-la recipiendi_fw-la be_v first_o of_o the_o particular_a by_o observe_v and_o correction_n of_o which_o rule_n be_v frame_v and_o notion_n raise_v by_o ordinary_a proceed_v in_o a_o rational_a intellect_n not_o need_v or_o to_o i_o prove_v a_o immateriality_n of_o the_o soul_n 8._o argue_v the_o outward_a sense_n convey_v the_o species_n of_o their_o object_n to_o the_o common_a sense_n that_o transmits_n they_o to_o the_o fantasy_n thence_o there_o must_v be_v organ_n to_o convey_v they_o to_o the_o intellect_n but_o once_o come_v thither_o the_o intellect_n order_v they_o and_o judge_n of_o they_o without_o help_n of_o any_o organ_n at_o all_o this_o if_o he_o can_v maintain_v by_o good_a proof_n erit_fw-la apollo_n and_o shall_v have_v the_o garland_n but_o till_o that_o be_v do_v we_o be_v where_o we_o begin_v 9_o pag._n 713._o his_o nine_o argument_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o ramble_n pag_n 716._o his_o ten_o argument_n be_v take_v ex_fw-la non_fw-la concessis_fw-la 11._o argue_v god_n be_v the_o soul_n chief_a good_a therefore_o the_o must_v necessary_o have_v mean_n to_o attain_v to_o he_o but_o that_o she_o can_v do_v while_o she_o be_v in_o the_o body_n obstruct_v by_o sensual_a power_n therefore_o she_o must_v have_v a_o subsistence_n out_o of_o the_o body_n in_o which_o she_o may_v arrive_v to_o that_o enjoyment_n i_o answer_v this_o beg_v the_o question_n or_o presume_v the_o case_n determine_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o she_o as_o our_o author_n promise_v to_o prove_v and_o now_o bring_v she_o to_o stand_v upon_o a_o bare_a supposal_n with_o as_o little_a firmness_n as_o when_o he_o begin_v his_o argument_n the_o subsistence_n in_o separation_n be_v continue_v to_o be_v deny_v and_o till_o that_o evince_v to_o be_v erroneous_a this_o argument_n be_v very_a vanity_n 12._o argue_v that_o which_o do_v real_o move_v and_o act_v itself_o must_v be_v immaterial_a but_o man_n soul_n do_v so_o and_o have_v a_o free_a will_n and_o choice_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v i_o demand_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o beast_n he_o say_v the_o element_n do_v not_o move_v because_o they_o be_v material_a i_o demand_v how_o he_o dispose_v of_o the_o fire_n which_o the_o world_n take_v to_o be_v always_o in_o motion_n and_o that_o natural_o he_o say_v the_o beast_n can_v make_v no_o resistance_n to_o their_o appetite_n but_o must_v needs_o follow_v they_o yet_o every_o day_n afford_v we_o proof_n that_o beast_n can_v and_o do_v resist_v their_o appetite_n a_o setting-dog_n have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o run_v and_o his_o mouth_n will_v work_v and_o his_o chap_n water_n and_o yet_o he_o contain_v himself_o and_o sit_v still_o in_o sight_n of_o his_o game_n for_o a_o long_a time_n together_o 13._o argue_v pag._n 717._o man_n have_v power_n to_o choose_v loss_n of_o their_o blood_n and_o life_n and_o that_o show_v their_o soul_n superior_a and_o not_o dependent_a upon_o their_o body_n and_o we_o agree_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v all_o that_o and_o that_o the_o intellect_n have_v a_o swasive_a power_n over_o other_o faculty_n and_o sometime_o prevail_v with_o they_o to_o suffer_v pain_n and_o present_a death_n in_o expectation_n of_o believe_v future_a reward_n and_o this_o by_o a_o power_n of_o discretion_n in_o the_o intellect_n without_o dependence_n upon_o the_o body_n or_o immateriality_n in_o the_o soul_n pag._n 718._o say_v if_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a it_o will_v languish_v with_o the_o body_n suffer_v in_o its_o sickness_n feel_v its_o infirmity_n and_o weaken_v as_o the_o body_n grow_v weak_a and_o all_o this_o we_o say_v it_o do_v sequitur_fw-la temperamentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la and_o that_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o its_o materiality_n he_o say_v man_n mind_n in_o sickness_n and_o at_o death_n be_v more_o lively_a sensible_a of_o their_o sin_n than_o in_o health_n that_o grow_v from_o tear_n of_o approach_a danger_n of_o be_v take_v away_o in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n for_o which_o punishment_n be_v undoubted_o to_o be_v award_v at_o the_o resurrection_n without_o mean_n or_o hope_n of_o any_o alteration_n in_o the_o space_n intermediate_v betwixt_o death_n and_o that_o and_o not_o from_o a_o quickness_n of_o mind_n more_o than_o or_o above_o ordinary_a but_o from_o the_o nearness_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o concern_v he_o say_v when_o man_n forsake_v worldly_a business_n they_o be_v make_v more_o apt_a for_o contemplation_n and_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v outward_a help_n as_o abstinence_n and_o retiredness_n which_o may_v advance_v the_o intellective_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o strengthen_v it_o against_o the_o passionate_a and_o sensual_a faculty_n and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v assist_v by_o purge_v bleed_a or_o other_o physic_n so_o by_o good_a air_n good_a company_n and_o even_o by_o good_a news_n which_o all_o be_v token_n of_o the_o soul_n participation_n with_o the_o body_n and_o induce_v to_o apprehend_v its_o material_a subsistence_n with_o and_o in_o the_o body_n our_o author_n conclude_v he_o have_v enough_o prove_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n but_o we_o still_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v enough_o do_v it_o and_o how_o much_o he_o have_v do_v towards_o it_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o common_a
se_fw-la and_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la in_o this_o case_n or_o answer_v to_o what_o he_o say_v before_o that_o the_o original_a of_o this_o corruption_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v god_n own_o appointment_n whence_o he_o make_v new_a clean_n pure_a soul_n and_o appoint_v they_o to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o to_o be_v make_v wicked_a and_o fall_v for_o exceed_o the_o great_a part_n into_o everlasting_a burn_n those_o who_o be_v persuade_v may_v believe_v what_o he_o say_v pag._n 780._o say_v again_o adam_n be_v the_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o man_n and_o sin_n and_o this_o natural_a contagion_n descend_v from_o he_o upon_o all_o his_o posterity_n as_o well_o upon_o their_o new_a create_a soul_n as_o their_o propagate_v body_n by_o the_o special_a ordinance_n of_o god_n but_o some_o say_v he_o will_v except_v how_o can_v adam_n be_v sin_n be_v impute_v to_o man_n soul_n if_o they_o be_v not_o generate_v for_o else_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o loin_n of_o adam_n when_o he_o sin_v he_o answer_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n make_v the_o man_n and_o you_o must_v not_o divide_v they_o in_o examination_n of_o this_o matter_n soul_n or_o body_n be_v not_o bear_v apart_o nor_o come_v from_o adam_n single_o nor_o be_v sin_n impute_v to_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n it_o be_v man_n that_o come_v from_o adam_n not_o their_o soul_n or_o body_n and_o the_o whole_a person_n be_v call_v son_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man._n we_o say_v so_o too_o all_o be_v son_n of_o adam_n and_o of_o man_n soul_n and_o body_n and_o when_o he_o divide_v they_o and_o bring_v one_o from_o creation_n single_o and_o the_o other_o from_o propagation_n single_o he_o offend_v male_a dividendo_fw-la god_n put_v they_o together_o they_o live_v together_o so_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v generate_v together_o and_o we_o may_v apply_v to_o they_o 2_o sam._n 1.23_o saul_n and_o jonathan_n be_v lovely_a in_o their_o life_n and_o in_o their_o death_n they_o be_v not_o divide_v but_o fall_v together_o pag._n 781._o he_o say_v christ_n be_v call_v the_o seed_n of_o david_n and_o son_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o his_o soul_n be_v not_o generate_v this_o be_v neither_o prove_v nor_o grant_v for_o he_o be_v like_a to_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n as_o man_n sin_n only_o except_v and_o that_o manhood_n he_o take_v from_o his_o mother_n a_o daughter_n of_o david_n and_o a_o very_a woman_n he_o take_v all_o that_o be_v man_n from_o she_o and_o as_o much_o as_o other_o man_n take_v from_o their_o parent_n pag._n 782._o he_o say_v the_o soul_n come_v not_o from_o the_o parent_n but_o be_v create_v by_o god_n but_o its_o principle_n of_o existence_n come_v from_o the_o parent_n for_o that_o it_o do_v not_o begin_v to_o be_v or_o subsist_v but_o in_o the_o body_n dispose_v and_o prepare_v for_o it_o and_o this_o make_v he_o hold_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v in_o the_o body_n dispose_v to_o receive_v it_o whence_o say_v he_o the_o soul_n may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o be_v generate_v by_o the_o parent_n it_o seem_v this_o sort_n of_o argumentation_n be_v mere_a trifle_a for_o the_o truth_n be_v either_o the_o soul_n be_v generate_v as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n or_o it_o be_v not_o that_o man_n be_v generate_v be_v according_a to_o nature_n and_o agree_v with_o scripture_n but_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v a_o new_a creation_n at_o every_o fruitful_a coition_n be_v not_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n be_v against_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n and_o seem_v a_o mere_a and_o bare_a humane_a invention_n and_o fiction_n introduce_v for_o the_o better_a maintain_v the_o suppose_a be_v of_o a_o immaterial_a self-subsisting_a soul_n in_o man_n and_o be_v of_o no_o other_o use_v nor_o have_v any_o other_o foundation_n or_o ground_n but_o a_o intent_n and_o desire_n to_o fortify_v and_o maintain_v that_o opinion_n and_o thence_o and_o for_o that_o only_o end_v it_o be_v that_o our_o author_n have_v bestow_v so_o much_o labour_n about_o it_o with_o what_o success_n must_v be_v leave_v to_o judgement_n he_o cite_v contarenus_n and_o ficinus_fw-la that_o the_o production_n of_o soul_n be_v in_o and_o by_o a_o medium_fw-la betwixt_o creation_n and_o generation_n and_o that_o the_o animal_n spirit_n which_o be_v a_o medium_fw-la betwixt_o soul_n and_o body_n do_v knit_v and_o unite_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n together_o he_o catch_v at_o any_o say_v that_o sound_n towards_o a_o solder_v for_o knit_v and_o strength_v of_o his_o precarious_a assertion_n for_o these_o say_n make_v as_o much_o against_o as_o for_o his_o opinion_n pag._n 782._o he_o begin_v to_o put_v objection_n against_o his_o own_o opinion_n to_o the_o number_n of_o nine_o and_o give_v answer_n to_o they_o the_o main_a of_o which_o answer_n be_v ground_v in_o non_fw-la concessis_fw-la viz._n that_o christ_n be_v perfect_o generate_v from_o mary_n and_o yet_o he_o take_v not_o his_o soul_n from_o she_o therefore_o say_v he_o parent_n do_v generate_v other_o perfect_o like_o themselves_o although_o their_o soul_n be_v not_o generate_v we_o have_v say_v all_o that_o be_v man_n in_o christ_n viz._n soul_n and_o body_n come_v from_o the_o virgin_n for_o any_o thing_n appear_v and_o we_o do_v say_v that_o if_o soul_n be_v not_o generate_v as_o well_o as_o body_n the_o parent_n do_v not_o generate_v other_o perfect_o like_o themselves_o nor_o near_o like_o themselves_o but_o carcase_n rather_o or_o body_n that_o have_v no_o life_n in_o they_o not_o a_o man_n for_o that_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi esse_fw-la rei_fw-la pag._n 784._o respondendo_fw-la repeat_v the_o soul_n be_v create_v pure_a then_o of_o that_o and_o the_o generate_v body_n man_n be_v make_v then_o god_n fasten_v adam_n be_v sin_n upon_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n or_o the_o man_n by_o imputation_n and_o thence_o the_o person_n yet_o in_o the_o womb_n become_v involve_v in_o the_o gild_n of_o original_a sin_n this_o he_o say_v before_o and_o it_o be_v the_o main_a ground_n he_o stand_v upon_o but_o not_o grant_v nor_o prove_v no_o nor_o probable_a that_o god_n shall_v use_v a_o pure_a young_a innocent_a soul_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o make_v the_o number_n of_o such_o soul_n decree_v and_o intend_v for_o eternal_a torment_n so_o exceed_v great_a in_o comparison_n of_o those_o intend_v to_o be_v save_v that_o god_n shall_v do_v this_o to_o pure_a innocent_a soul_n of_o his_o own_o immediate_a creation_n we_o can_v dare_v not_o believe_v it_o without_o most_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o yet_o he_o give_v we_o none_o but_o his_o own_o bare_a word_n for_o it_o or_o his_o opinion_n possible_o his_o conceit_n which_o we_o find_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o follow_v p._n 786._o say_v hilary_n think_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v first_o form_v and_o before_o the_o body_n generate_v and_o this_o say_v he_o will_v serve_v our_o turn_n well_o to_o prove_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n but_o that_o thereupon_o will_v follow_v other_o absurd_a consequence_n other_o think_v the_o soul_n be_v form_v after_o the_o body_n of_o which_o some_o think_v it_o first_o create_v and_o then_o infuse_v which_o also_o prove_v it_o self-subsistent_a but_o say_v he_o the_o most_o receive_a opinion_n be_v that_o of_o the_o school_n viz._n that_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v in_o the_o body_n now_o form_v and_o ready_a for_o its_o reception_n infundendo_fw-la creature_n he_o say_v the_o generative_a formation_n of_o the_o body_n be_v first_o from_o a_o milky_a substance_n then_o change_v into_o a_o bloody_a one_o and_o then_o into_o flesh_n bones_o etc._n etc._n and_o last_o to_o a_o perfect_a formation_n and_o so_o for_o the_o soul_n first_o there_o be_v in_o the_o seed_n not_o a_o soul_n but_o the_o vigour_n of_o a_o soul_n whence_o rise_v in_o the_o body_n a_o vegetative_a soul_n whence_o the_o embryo_n live_v short_o after_o which_o there_o be_v by_o a_o like_a vigour_n in_o the_o seed_n a_o sensitive_a soul_n produce_v and_o the_o vegetative_a be_v extinguish_v then_o sensitive_a soul_n extinguish_v and_o the_o rational_a soul_n succeed_v thereunto_o but_o not_o by_o the_o seminal_a vigour_n but_o by_o the_o sole_a creation_n of_o god_n out_o of_o nothing_o and_o thus_o his_o tenet_n set_v god_n at_o continual_a employment_n to_o create_v a_o number_n of_o soul_n every_o day_n all_o the_o world_n over_o without_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n or_o reason_n or_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o antiquity_n and_o he_o say_v thus_o man_n by_o generation_n prepare_v for_o god_n a_o body_n into_o which_o god_n may_v introduce_v a_o soul_n of_o his_o own_o creation_n pag._n 787._o here_o he_o place_v the_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o soul_n not_o in_o the_o head_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o
have_v no_o participation_n thereof_o with_o she_o or_o that_o she_o do_v or_o can_v act_v any_o thing_n or_o produce_v any_o effect_n without_o the_o spirit_n member_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n which_o it_o seem_v can_v be_v exclude_v from_o participate_v with_o the_o soul_n in_o all_o its_o affection_n operation_n and_o motion_n no_o more_o than_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v unconcern_v in_o the_o health_n accident_n rejoice_n or_o suffering_n of_o the_o body_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o other_o question_n or_o query_n which_o if_o it_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o affirmative_a will_v strong_o infer_v the_o soul_n materiality_n viz._n concern_v the_o mode_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o mankind_n if_o the_o parent_n do_v generate_v a_o child_n like_o unto_o themselves_o consist_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o form_n or_o such_o a_o like_a soul_n and_o body_n as_o themselves_o be_v if_o the_o child_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v generate_v by_o the_o parent_n as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o if_o the_o thing_n have_v be_v prove_v or_o can_v and_o shall_v be_v prove_v effectual_o so_o to_o be_v do_v a_o very_a strong_a inference_n and_o argument_n may_v thence_o be_v draw_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o constitution_n with_o the_o body_n material_o and_o natural_o extinguishable_a by_o dissolution_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la man_n who_o constituent_a part_n they_o be_v for_o it_o seem_v generation_n and_o corruption_n do_v mutuo_fw-la se_fw-la ponere_fw-la &_o tollere_fw-la what_o grow_v from_o generation_n have_v a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o growth_n strength_n decay_n and_o dissolution_n if_o therefore_o one_o man_n do_v generate_v another_o like_o himself_o and_o so_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v likely_a that_o what_o come_v from_o generation_n be_v under_o a_o clear_a capacity_n of_o corruption_n if_o it_o be_v not_o under_o a_o necessity_n of_o terminate_n by_o that_o mean_n we_o be_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n convince_v that_o the_o parent_n do_v procreate_v child_n like_o themselves_o both_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o that_o therefore_o both_o those_o part_n have_v in_o nature_n and_o reason_n a_o capacity_n or_o a_o tendency_n if_o not_o a_o sort_n of_o necessity_n to_o terminate_v in_o corruption_n so_o as_o we_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n or_o nature_n and_o hitherto_o produce_v be_v strong_a enough_o to_o evince_v that_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v immaterial_a or_o self-subsistent_a after_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o person_n and_o corruption_n of_o that_o body_n to_o which_o it_o be_v knit_v and_o which_o whilst_o life_n last_v it_o do_v inform_v direct_a and_o actuate_v and_o herewith_o shall_v be_v conclude_v the_o disquisition_n intend_v concern_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n found_v upon_o the_o ground_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o try_v by_o the_o argument_n extract_v from_o they_o we_o proceed_v from_o they_o to_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o argument_n offer_v for_o proof_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n draw_v by_o our_o opposer_n from_o the_o ground_n of_o moral_a congruity_n there_o must_v be_v say_v they_o a_o reward_n and_o punishment_n future_a to_o this_o life_n of_o this_o the_o corrupt_a carcase_n be_v by_o no_o possibility_n in_o nature_n capable_a and_o therefore_o the_o soul_n must_v needs_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n that_o thereby_o future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n may_v have_v a_o proper_a subject_a to_o work_v upon_o and_o this_o sort_n of_o argument_n be_v propound_v and_o handle_v by_o baxter_n in_o his_o quote_v book_n at_o p._n 34._o reach_v thence_o to_o 40._o and_o by_o dr._n more_o in_o his_o 18_o chap._n of_o the_o quote_v book_n pag._n 314._o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n and_o by_o sir_n k._n digby_n in_o the_o 10_o paragraph_n of_o his_o 9th_o chapter_n and_o all_o our_o author_n have_v main_o insist_v upon_o this_o argument_n in_o place_n before_o quote_v and_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o upon_o very_o good_a and_o unanswerable_a reason_n such_o as_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n ground_v itself_o only_o upon_o nature_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v sufficient_a reply_n unto_o or_o to_o overcome_v this_o we_o look_v upon_o as_o the_o potent_a and_o prevalent_a argument_n whereby_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o all_o the_o age_n of_o it_o hitherto_o have_v be_v draw_v and_o even_o force_v to_o consent_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n and_o to_o invent_v elysium_n fortunate_a island_n and_o paradise_n for_o the_o good_a also_o tartarum_n and_o barathrum_n and_o gehenna_n for_o the_o wicked_a soul_n depart_v the_o silly_a american_n have_v not_o want_v their_o more_o crude_a conceit_n viz._n that_o in_o place_n beyond_o their_o mountain_n the_o good_a soul_n sing_v and_o dance_v among_o grove_n and_o fountain_n and_o the_o wicked_a one_o be_v relegated_a to_o denn_n and_o cave_n and_o other_o dark_a and_o disconsolate_a place_n suit_v with_o their_o demerit_n thus_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o future_a recompense_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n have_v be_v spread_v and_o receive_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n far_o and_o wide_a without_o stint_n in_o place_n or_o stay_v in_o time_n all_o nation_n and_o all_o religion_n have_v accept_v of_o this_o opinion_n and_o it_o have_v hitherto_o prevail_v among_o they_o and_o thus_o may_v their_o argument_n be_v frame_v it_o be_v moral_o congruous_a among_o all_o man_n that_o good_a man_n and_o action_n shall_v be_v reward_v and_o recompense_v and_o that_o bad_a man_n and_o action_n shall_v be_v punish_v but_o man_n find_v and_o see_v it_o fall_v out_o very_o often_o that_o reward_n and_o punishment_n be_v not_o so_o distribute_v in_o this_o world_n ergo_fw-la moral_a congruity_n require_v and_o that_o prove_v there_o must_v be_v a_o future_a state_n wherein_o man_n and_o their_o action_n shall_v be_v reward_v and_o recompense_v according_a to_o their_o desert_n this._n man_n can_v reasonable_o refuse_v to_o grant_v and_o then_o ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la it_o may_v be_v further_o argue_v man_n be_v constitute_v but_o of_o two_o essential_a part_n viz._n his_o body_n and_o his_o soul_n his_o body_n die_v corrupt_v and_o turn_v to_o dust_n and_o so_o become_v incapable_a of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o a_o future_a state_n ergo_fw-la if_o the_o man_n and_o his_o action_n be_v reward_v or_o punish_v in_o a_o future_a state_n he_o must_v receive_v the_o effect_n of_o such_o reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o that_o part_n of_o he_o which_o be_v repute_v capable_a and_o may_v by_o possibility_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o man_n death_n viz._n in_o his_o soul_n and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v the_o soul_n must_v have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o same_o hold_v true_a negative_a there_o be_v nothing_o of_o man_n to_o be_v reward_v or_o punish_v in_o a_o future_a state_n but_o his_o body_n or_o his_o soul_n but_o the_o body_n in_o a_o state_n of_o dissolution_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n and_o if_o the_o soul_n extinguish_v in_o death_n then_o be_v there_o nothing_o of_o the_o man_n lest_o capable_a of_o receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o a_o state_n future_a to_o this_o life_n ergo_fw-la that_o the_o rule_n of_o moral_a congruity_n may_v stand_v and_o be_v maintain_v in_o the_o world_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n must_v needs_o enjoy_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n capable_a of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n after_o death_n and_o the_o dissolution_n and_o corruption_n of_o his_o body_n this_o argument_n appear_v irrefragable_a not_o to_o be_v confute_v or_o effectual_o answer_v by_o the_o uttermost_a strength_n of_o man_n reason_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v nothing_o strange_a that_o it_o have_v prevail_v with_o jew_n and_o gentile_n mahometan_n and_o christian_n induce_v they_o general_o to_o belive_o a_o separate_a state_n of_o humane_a soul_n after_o death_n and_o it_o be_v still_o use_v by_o all_o our_o author_n for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n at_o this_o time_n we_o still_o agree_v that_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n can_v by_o the_o bare_a wit_n or_o reason_n of_o mankind_n be_v answer_v and_o refute_v but_o yet_o we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v full_o so_o answer_v by_o deduction_n out_o of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n and_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o that_o by_o argument_n thence_o to_o be_v take_v both_o negative_a and_o positive_a and_o though_o we_o do_v main_o rely_v upon_o our_o positive_a argument_n on_o this_o behalf_n yet_o it_o seem_v not_o requisite_a to_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n the_o negative_a argument_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o our_o holy_a
man_n without_o design_n to_o teach_v concern_v it_o 2._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o retribution_n expect_v to_o be_v make_v at_o the_o resurrection_n will_v be_v both_o more_o complete_a and_o formal_a than_o what_o man_n conceive_v to_o be_v in_o the_o procedure_n concern_v a_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n we_o read_v god_n will_v not_o execute_v upon_o sodom_n without_o a_o full_a examination_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o resurrection_n all_o shall_v stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o book_n shall_v be_v open_v that_o of_o conscience_n and_o that_o of_o life_n that_o of_o conscience_n have_v enough_o evidence_n to_o condemn_v the_o whole_a world_n but_o those_o who_o name_n be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o those_o only_o shall_v escape_v by_o special_a privilege_n or_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o proceed_v will_v be_v more_o formal_a so_o the_o retribution_n will_v be_v more_o complete_a and_o make_v to_o both_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o man_n his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n which_o as_o they_o have_v joint_o and_o inseparate_o act_v in_o this_o life_n so_o shall_v they_o rejoice_v or_o mourn_v at_o the_o resurrection_n after_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o last_o judgement_n pass_v upon_o they_o 3._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o death_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v frequent_o call_v and_o compare_v to_o a_o sleep_n and_o that_o the_o most_o sound_a and_o profound_a and_o in_o such_o a_o sleep_n viz._n a_o sound_a sleep_n whatsoever_o time_n pass_v over_o the_o sleeper_n head_n he_o have_v no_o perceivance_n of_o if_o it_o be_v two_o ten_o or_o twenty_o hour_n the_o length_n or_o shortness_n of_o the_o pass_a time_n do_v not_o at_o all_o appear_v to_o the_o sleeper_n but_o at_o his_o wake_n he_o rise_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v but_o new_o fall_v asleep_o man_n death_n be_v such_o a_o profound_a sleep_n and_o his_o resurrection_n such_o a_o wake_v if_o during_o that_o sleep_n there_o go_v over_o the_o dead_a man_n head_n month_n or_o year_n to_o a_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o this_o be_v no_o way_n perceivable_a by_o the_o dead_a person_n but_o when_o he_o rise_v it_o will_v be_v but_o as_o if_o he_o have_v new_o fall_v asleep_o we_o read_v that_o a_o thousand_o year_n with_o god_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n nor_o be_v they_o in_o truth_n so_o much_o and_o in_o our_o present_a case_n we_o may_v say_v that_o a_o thousand_o year_n go_v over_o such_o a_o sleeper_n head_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n to_o he_o or_o be_v rather_o less_o viz_o not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o sleeper_n as_o one_o day_n to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v active_a in_o the_o world_n for_o that_o the_o dead_a man_n be_v not_o at_o all_o affect_a with_o the_o time_n which_o pass_v over_o he_o but_o when_o the_o last_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v the_o dead_a world_n shall_v awake_v as_o if_o they_o have_v then_o but_o new_o fall_v asleep_o ready_a to_o obey_v the_o summons_n of_o rise_v you_o dead_a and_o come_v to_o judgement_n whence_o although_o the_o time_n betwixt_o death_n and_o judgement_n appear_v upon_o a_o sudden_a conception_n to_o be_v long_o or_o overlong_a yet_o upon_o a_o better_a search_v it_o will_v be_v find_v of_o very_o small_a importance_n either_o in_o respect_n to_o god_n or_o man._n and_o notice_n it_o seem_v may_v be_v take_v that_o it_o will_v look_v like_o a_o great_a impropriety_n to_o term_v death_n a_o sleep_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o after_o death_n the_o better_a part_n of_o the_o man_n viz._n his_o soul_n continue_v wake_v and_o alive_a and_o at_o a_o great_a liberty_n and_o freedom_n of_o action_n than_o ever_o it_o enjoy_v during_o its_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n 4._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o same_o which_o die_v rises_z and_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v principal_a in_o man_n so_o man_n shall_v be_v more_o the_o same_o at_o his_o rise_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o soul_n then_o of_o his_o body_n for_o his_o body_n shall_v be_v but_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o wheat_n come_v of_o wheat_n and_o barley_n of_o barley_n but_o when_o providence_n have_v so_o form_v the_o body_n and_o kindle_v in_o it_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n by_o breathe_v into_o he_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n to_o be_v derive_v only_o from_o heaven_n his_o humane_a power_n and_o faculty_n viz._n his_o sense_n and_o common_a sense_n his_o fantasy_n intellect_n and_o judgement_n his_o affection_n and_o passion_n his_o knowledge_n and_o memory_n shall_v be_v altogether_o the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v when_o he_o die_v and_o as_o much_o the_o same_o as_o they_o be_v at_o a_o man_n wake_v again_o after_o a_o sound_n and_o long_o sleep_v take_v and_o the_o person_n rise_v shall_v be_v more_o the_o same_o than_o a_o old_a man_n be_v the_o same_o person_n that_o he_o be_v when_o he_o be_v young_a the_o same_o person_n soul_n and_o body_n that_o die_v shall_v be_v revive_v and_o rise_v again_o as_o one_o who_o fall_v asleep_a wake_v and_o return_v to_o the_o former_a power_n affection_n and_o action_n of_o his_o life_n but_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o a_o separate_a be_v and_o state_n of_o activity_n during_o all_o that_o time_n of_o the_o separation_n how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v to_o obtain_v a_o resurrection_n or_o be_v conceive_v to_o desire_v a_o reunion_n with_o that_o body_n which_o before_o be_v but_o as_o a_o cage_n or_o prison_n to_o it_o and_o it_o seem_v such_o a_o soul_n shall_v rather_o fear_v and_o resist_v such_o a_o reunion_n with_o its_o former_a body_n then_o rejoice_v at_o it_o or_o be_v content_v with_o it_o 5._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o betwixt_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o man_n no_o alteration_n of_o his_o condition_n can_v be_v expect_v or_o hope_v for_o but_o as_o the_o tree_n fall_v so_o it_o must_v lie_v and_o as_o death_n leave_v we_o so_o judgement_n shall_v find_v we_o the_o body_n be_v return_v to_o the_o dust_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v and_o if_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n and_o activity_n first_o derive_v from_o god_n and_o sine_fw-la propagate_v by_o generation_n be_v by_o death_n extinguish_v there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o a_o alter_a power_n natural_o to_o work_v upon_o solomon_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v no_o work_n nor_o device_n nor_o knowledge_n nor_o wisdom_n in_o the_o grave_a but_o all_o be_v rest_n and_o peace_n there_o and_o so_o say_v job_n there_o the_o wicked_a cease_v from_o trouble_v and_o there_o the_o we_o airy_a be_v at_o rest_n so_o chap._n 3.11_o oh_o that_o i_o have_v die_v from_o the_o womb_n i_o shall_v then_o have_v be_v as_o though_o i_o have_v not_o be_v solomon_n again_o as_o a_o man_n come_v out_o of_o his_o mother_n womb_n so_o shall_v he_o return_v to_o go_v as_o he_o come_v and_o shall_v take_v nothing_o with_o he_o and_o so_o for_o the_o resurrection_n man_n shall_v rise_v as_o they_o lie_v down_o without_o natural_a or_o appear_a possibility_n of_o any_o alteration_n we_o proceed_v now_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o what_o we_o have_v before_o assert_v viz._n that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v a_o article_n or_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o clear_o teach_v and_o assert_v as_o well_o evidence_v and_o attest_v and_o as_o full_o and_o certain_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o any_o other_o point_n or_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whatsoever_o and_o for_o this_o our_o evidence_n shall_v begin_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o exod._n 3.6_o god_n be_v style_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o from_o that_o style_n the_o resurrection_n be_v prove_v by_o our_o lord_n but_o we_o must_v agree_v that_o the_o proof_n which_o it_o make_v rise_v more_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o who_o quote_v it_o as_o a_o proof_n than_o in_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o word_n themselves_o for_o god_n may_v reasonable_o be_v so_o style_v from_o the_o great_a favour_n which_o he_o have_v show_v to_o those_o person_n and_o his_o covenant_n and_o promise_v make_v with_o they_o and_o to_o they_o but_o the_o sadducee_n refuse_v to_o admit_v of_o any_o other_o scripture_n save_o moses_n his_o write_n and_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n out_o of_o those_o write_n our_o lord_n make_v choice_n of_o this_o text_n and_o from_o his_o authority_n the_o same_o must_v be_v admit_v among_o christian_n to_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n of_o our_o future_a resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o ordinary_a reader_n can_v hardly_o have_v draw_v a_o good_a proof_n out_o of_o that_o text_n so_o another_o proof_n of_o the_o resurrection_n appear_v not_o till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o there_o
draw_v nigh_o 1_o pet._n 1.4_o and_o 5._o ver._n we_o be_v beget_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n not_o already_o participate_v by_o soul_n in_o separation_n ver._n 9_o receive_v seem_v in_o the_o last_o time_n the_o end_n of_o your_o faith_n even_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n viz._n their_o person_n or_o their selve_o chap._n 4.5_o the_o wicked_a shall_v give_v account_n to_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a ver._n 7._o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v at_o hand_n be_v you_o therefore_o sober_a and_o watch_v unto_o prayer_n ver._n 13._o but_o rejoice_v in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n suffering_n that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o may_v be_v glad_a also_o with_o exceed_a joy_n seem_v not_o before_o that_o time_n chap._n 5.4_o those_o who_o do_v well_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o 2_o pet._n 3.8_o 9_o 10._o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v with_o the_o lord_n but_o as_o one_o day_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o slack_a but_o will_v have_v all_o come_v to_o he_o yet_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v in_o a_o terrible_a manner_n and_o we_o must_v wait_v for_o and_o haste_n to_o the_o come_n of_o that_o day_n and_o look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o earth_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n and_o see_v you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n keep_v yourselves_o without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n without_o mention_n of_o a_o soul_n or_o its_o expectation_n 1_o john_n 2.28_o now_o little_a child_n abide_v in_o he_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v have_v confidence_n and_o not_o be_v ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n chap._n 2.3_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v and_o every_o one_o that_o have_v this_o hope_n purify_v himself_o even_o as_o christ_n be_v pure_a without_o mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_v state_n betwixt_o death_n and_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n revel_v 17._o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o they_o also_o which_o pierce_v he_o and_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v wail_v because_o of_o he_o even_o so_o amen_n the_o thing_n be_v certain_a chap._n 3.5_o i_o will_v confess_v the_o name_n of_o he_o who_o overcome_v before_o my_o father_n and_o before_o his_o angel_n chap._n 20.4_o judgement_n import_v a_o first_o resurrection_n ver._n 11._o and_o 12._o the_o form_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n relate_v where_o the_o dead_a both_o small_a and_o great_a be_v raise_v and_o stand_v before_o god_n and_o have_v doom_n and_o judgement_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n 1_o cor._n 4.5_o judge_v nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o both_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a work_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o then_o shall_v every_o deserve_v man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n heb._n 6.2_o say_v let_v we_o go_v on_o to_o perfection_n to_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o eternal_a judgement_n our_o lord_n direct_v search_v the_o scripture_n and_o we_o have_v follow_v his_o direction_n upon_o our_o present_a point_n not_o for_o that_o it_o be_v doubt_v that_o man_n do_v disbelieve_v or_o even_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o our_o article_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o it_o may_v more_o clear_o appear_v how_o much_o better_o and_o more_o strong_a evidence_n there_o be_v for_o this_o point_n and_o the_o retribution_n to_o be_v expect_v at_o the_o resurrection_n then_o there_o be_v for_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n as_o a_o subject_a for_o the_o reward_n and_o punishment_n to_o be_v expect_v in_o a_o state_n future_a to_o this_o life_n we_o may_v perceive_v the_o resurrection_n be_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v to_o the_o very_a intent_n that_o future_a recompense_n for_o thing_n do_v in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v fit_o award_v and_o full_o execute_v whereas_o we_o find_v not_o one_o text_n in_o scripture_n that_o say_v in_o express_a term_n man_n have_v a_o immaterial_a or_o separately_z subsist_v or_o a_o immortal_a soul_n nor_o that_o tell_v we_o recompense_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o it_o in_o a_o future_a state_n nor_o do_v doctrinal_o so_o teach_v viz._n do_v utter_v the_o word_n from_o whence_o such_o collection_n be_v make_v with_o intent_n to_o teach_v that_o doctrine_n but_o the_o word_n whence_o such_o collection_n be_v make_v be_v all_o speak_v intend_v to_o teach_v some_o other_o more_o main_a and_o principal_a point_n and_o the_o point_n concern_v the_o soul_n be_v but_o by_o collection_n from_o the_o expression_n principal_o intend_v to_o teach_v some_o other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n so_o as_o these_o different_a way_n or_o medium_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n future_a to_o this_o life_n be_v place_v and_o consider_v together_o magis_fw-la illucescunt_fw-la that_o clearness_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o one_o seem_v more_o lucid_a and_o eminent_a by_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o darkness_n and_o in_o certainty_n of_o the_o other_o also_o the_o one_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o certain_a it_o seem_v very_o needless_a and_o somewhat_o incongruous_a to_o introduce_v another_o mean_n or_o medium_n of_o future_a recompense_n neither_o clear_a in_o itself_o nor_o plain_o assert_v or_o precise_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o christian_a doctrine_n nor_o yet_o receive_v as_o a_o article_n into_o any_o of_o our_o most_o ancient_a and_o approve_a creed_n whereas_o the_o reception_n of_o our_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n into_o every_o one_o of_o they_o fix_v the_o same_o in_o the_o christian_a religion_n like_o a_o rock_n immovable_a and_o we_o read_v that_o he_o who_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n be_v wise_a but_o he_o who_o choose_v to_o build_v upon_o the_o sand_n be_v otherwise_o and_o what_o can_v man_n otherwise_o think_v of_o one_o not_o able_a to_o support_v himself_o and_o in_o want_n of_o direction_n and_o relief_n be_v in_o reach_n or_o compass_v of_o a_o firm_a and_o strong_a pillar_n will_v choose_v to_o lean_v himself_o against_o a_o post_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o rot_v yet_o may_v be_v reasonable_o repute_v both_o feeble_a and_o suspicious_a the_o censure_n due_a upon_o such_o a_o choice_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o every_o man_n and_o thus_o it_o seem_v we_o have_v show_v and_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n sufficient_a to_o answer_v the_o world_n expectation_n concern_v reward_n and_o punishment_n in_o a_o state_n future_a to_o this_o life_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o introduce_v a_o separate_a subsist_v soul_n to_o that_o intent_n and_o we_o proceed_v to_o our_o author_n three_o topick_n or_o ground_n of_o argument_n for_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n and_o immateriality_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n viz._n to_o examine_v the_o tenor_n and_o intent_n of_o such_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v or_o may_v be_v find_v out_o and_o allege_v to_o that_o purpose_n intend_v to_o offer_v such_o answer_n to_o they_o several_o after_o each_o quotation_n as_o shall_v ready_o occur_v not_o presume_v a_o likelihood_n to_o make_v they_o such_o as_o may_v satisfy_v and_o convince_v mind_n prepossessed_n all_o the_o time_n of_o their_o life_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o and_o may_v be_v or_o muft_v be_v so_o prove_v it_o shall_v be_v enough_o to_o suppose_v they_o possible_o be_v make_v such_o as_o that_o people_n who_o be_v desirous_a or_o willing_a to_o put_v off_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o their_o former_a opinion_n in_o this_o point_n draw_v from_o their_o early_a education_n and_o suck_v in_o with_o their_o first_o milk_n if_o such_o person_n do_v not_o perceive_v the_o answer_n make_v to_o be_v unreasonable_a fictitious_a or_o very_o trivial_a there_o will_v enough_o be_v obtain_v to_o satisfy_v a_o expectation_n limit_v within_o narrow_a bound_n and_o that_o hardly_o can_v rise_v to_o the_o hope_n of_o so_o easy_a a_o passage_n under_o the_o censure_n of_o any_o who_o shall_v happen_v to_o peruse_v the_o same_o it_o seem_v less_o hazard_n than_o a_o hard_a censure_n can_v be_v hope_v for_o
wrath_n chap._n 12.7_o the_o dust_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v unto_o god_n who_o give_v it_o we_o say_v this_o may_v be_v expound_v by_o gen._n 7.22_o and_o 1_o sam._n 30.12_o and_o job_n 12.10_o all_o before_o cite_v then_o chap._n 34.14_o if_o god_n set_v his_o heart_n upon_o man_n if_o he_o gather_v unto_o himself_o his_o spirit_n and_o his_o breath_n all_o flesh_n shall_v perish_v together_o and_o man_n shall_v turn_v again_o unto_o dust_n psal_n 31._o prays_n let_v i_o not_o be_v put_v to_o confusion_n but_o deliver_v i_o be_v thou_o my_o rock_n and_o defence_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commit_v my_o spirit_n for_o thou_o have_v redeem_v i_o and_o psal_n 104.29_o when_o thou_o take_v away_o their_o breath_n they_o die_v and_o be_v turn_v again_o to_o their_o dust_n when_o thou_o let_v thy_o breath_n go_v forth_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v and_o thou_o shall_v renew_v the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n zech._n 6.5_o these_o be_v the_o four_o spirit_n of_o the_o heaven_n note_v on_o the_o margin_n or_o wind_n these_o place_n make_v breath_n and_o the_o spirit_n mention_v by_o solomon_n to_o be_v much_o if_o not_o altogether_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o it_o seem_v remarkable_a that_o when_o david_n pray_v for_o deliverance_n from_o danger_n that_o be_v temporal_a as_o in_o psal_n 31._o he_o use_v this_o expression_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commit_v my_o spirit_n this_o make_v it_o seem_v to_o intend_v his_o whole_a person_n himself_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v usual_a and_o common_a in_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o word_n soul_n isa_n 29.24_o they_o who_o err_v in_o spirit_n shall_v come_v to_o understanding_n here_o spirit_n seem_v to_o signify_v a_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n viz._n his_o mind_n or_o intellect_n upon_o the_o whole_a it_o seem_v the_o spirit_n be_v return_v to_o god_n in_o solomon_n sense_n may_v be_v a_o willing_a submission_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o understanding_n to_o that_o dissolution_n by_o death_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o natural_a end_n of_o all_o mankind_n this_o make_v death_n appear_v a_o willing_a return_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n to_o god_n by_o a_o easy_a surrender_n of_o its_o fort_n and_o hold_v the_o body_n when_o other_o and_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o so_o meek_o surrender_v will_v be_v storm_v and_o force_v against_o their_o will_n to_o let_v go_v their_o hold_n and_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o fort_n which_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v against_o the_o violent_a and_o prevalent_a assault_n and_o storm_n of_o death_n we_o meet_v in_o isaiah_n ch._n 53.10_o such_o a_o addition_n concern_v the_o term_n of_o soul_n as_o we_o judge_v not_o fit_a to_o omit_v viz._n when_o thou_o shall_v make_v his_o soul_n a_o offer_n for_o sin_n this_o intend_v his_o whole_a person_n and_o he_o shall_v see_v of_o the_o travail_n of_o his_o soul_n chap._n 57.16_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v for_o ever_o for_o so_o shall_v the_o spirit_n fail_v before_o i_o and_o the_o soul_n which_o i_o have_v make_v viz._n the_o people_n which_o i_o have_v make_v so_o be_v it_o such_o a_o day_n for_o man_n to_o afflict_v his_o soul_n viz._n himself_o and_o if_o thou_o draw_v out_o thy_o soul_n to_o the_o hungry_a if_o thou_o minister_v unto_o he_o ezek._n 37.14_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n in_o you_o body_n rise_v from_o dry_a bone_n and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o this_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o four_o wind_n blow_v upon_o they_o whence_o it_o seem_v spirit_n wind_z and_o breath_n have_v a_o great_a congruity_n one_o with_o another_o and_o be_v put_v one_o for_o another_o divers_a time_n and_o this_o help_n to_o declare_v what_o solomon_n mean_v by_o spirit_n dan._n 2.3_o the_o king_n spirit_n be_v trouble_v to_o know_v the_o dream_n viz._n his_o understanding_n chap._n 5.20_o a_o excellent_a spirit_n knowledge_n and_o understanding_n be_v find_v in_o daniel_n one_o of_o these_o word_n expound_v another_o micah_n 6.7_o shall_v i_o give_v my_o first-born_a the_o fruit_n of_o my_o body_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o soul_n seem_v to_o import_v shall_v i_o give_v or_o sacrifice_v my_o child_n for_o my_o own_o sin_n soul_n be_v here_o put_v for_o person_n as_o we_o have_v show_v be_v very_o usual_a zech._n 6.5_o these_o be_v the_o four_o spirit_n or_o wind_n of_o the_o heaven_n chap._n 12.1_o the_o lord_n that_o form_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n within_o he_o viz._n who_o have_v give_v he_o faculty_n of_o sense_n memory_n understanding_n etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o make_v most_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o a_o separate_a and_o self-subsisting_a soul_n of_o man_n have_v be_v quote_v and_o such_o exposition_n make_v of_o they_o and_o answer_n thereby_o make_v to_o they_o as_o appear_v to_o we_o sufficient_a to_o abate_v and_o take_v away_o the_o violence_n or_o prove_v force_n of_o they_o by_o show_v that_o they_o do_v not_o necessary_o or_o strong_o compel_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o such_o a_o separate_a subsistance_n of_o humane_a soul_n but_o that_o they_o only_o be_v solve_v and_o answer_v by_o sense_n or_o construction_n more_o natural_a and_o likely_a and_o more_o consentaneous_a to_o the_o natural_a conception_n of_o a_o humane_a reason_n unbiased_a or_o distort_v by_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o formerly_z receive_v and_o radicate_v opinion_n we_o proceed_v to_o text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v quote_v to_o the_o same_o intent_n and_o purpose_n mat._n 16.25_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o for_o christ_n sake_n lose_v it_o shall_v find_v it_o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n here_o it_o seem_v the_o word_n soul_n intend_v the_o life_n or_o person_n of_o the_o man_n and_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n get_v by_o grasp_a or_o gape_v after_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o he_o lose_v his_o own_o life_n for_o without_o life_n to_o enjoy_v it_o what_o profit_n or_o benefit_n can_v one_o make_v of_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o it_o can_v be_v get_v and_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n will_v take_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o exchange_n for_o his_o life_n for_o he_o can_v have_v no_o profit_n but_o plain_a damage_n and_o loss_n by_o that_o exchange_n and_o yet_o say_v our_o lord_n he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o viz._n shall_v find_v profit_n by_o that_o exchange_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o father_n glory_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o man_n shall_v then_o receive_v a_o eternal_a recompense_n and_o be_v make_v a_o great_a gainer_n by_o that_o exchange_n chap._n 13.42_o for_o then_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v cast_v into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n and_o the_o righteous_a shall_v shine_v forth_o as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n next_o be_v quote_v matth._n 17._o the_o relation_n of_o our_o lord_n transfiguration_n repeat_v mark_v 9_o and_o luke_n 9_o there_o appear_v to_o they_o viz._n the_o three_o disciple_n moses_n and_o elias_n talk_v with_o he_o they_o all_o see_v the_o appearance_n it_o must_v be_v true_a then_o that_o these_o prophet_n have_v a_o subsistence_n after_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o our_o world_n and_o for_o elias_n he_o create_v no_o great_a difficulty_n in_o the_o case_n upon_o supposal_n that_o his_o body_n go_v to_o heaven_n and_o be_v change_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o a_o moment_n into_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o there_o may_v well_o enough_o be_v still_o continue_v and_o for_o moses_n his_o body_n it_o can_v never_o be_v find_v what_o become_v of_o it_o seem_v not_o very_o certain_a but_o not_o be_v to_o forth-come_a it_o be_v conjecture_v and_o conclude_v to_o be_v bury_v no_o man_n ever_o know_v where_o nor_o that_o there_o be_v or_o be_v a_o certainty_n in_o that_o fact_n it_o seem_v he_o go_v up_o the_o hill_n alone_o and_o never_o return_v nor_o be_v his_o body_n find_v what_o therefore_o become_v of_o he_o we_o may_v think_v remain_v a_o mystery_n and_o that_o he_o die_v may_v be_v take_v for_o a_o conjecture_n from_o common_a probability_n he_o never_o return_v nor_o be_v after_o to_o
be_v find_v therefore_o most_o likely_a he_o die_v in_o the_o mount_n and_o be_v bury_v but_o so_o unknown_o as_o they_o count_v it_o by_o conjecture_n also_o to_o be_v god_n own_o do_v but_o there_o be_v then_o no_o witness_n of_o that_o fact_n nor_o any_o revelation_n since_o concern_v it_o till_o this_o appearance_n of_o that_o prophet_n at_o our_o present_a transfiguration_n and_o that_o seem_v to_o favour_v rather_o moses_n his_o translation_n more_o than_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n although_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n stand_v for_o the_o late_a we_o leave_v the_o truth_n as_o a_o mystery_n and_o accept_v the_o proof_n as_o mystical_a and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v confide_v in_o or_o rely_v upon_o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o a_o doctrine_n who_o verity_n and_o certainty_n be_v now_o controvert_v and_o expect_v to_o be_v better_o prove_v than_o by_o mystical_a and_o untrialable_a argument_n matth._n 22.32_o god_n declare_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob._n and_o our_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n ergo_fw-la abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n be_v live_v and_o do_v subsist_v in_o their_o separate_a soul_n for_o their_o body_n be_v long_o since_o turn_v to_o dust_n and_o be_v not_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o all_o person_n who_o have_v live_v do_v live_v or_o shall_v live_v may_v be_v well_o enough_o say_v to_o live_v unto_o god_n with_o who_o thing_n past_a and_o to_o come_v may_v be_v well_o enough_o say_v to_o be_v present_a for_o that_o time_n can_v work_v or_o have_v any_o effect_n upon_o he_o his_o be_v or_o his_o knowledge_n and_o therefore_o luke_n 20.28_o relate_v the_o same_o fact_n say_v god_n be_v not_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n add_v the_o reason_n for_o that_o all_o live_v unto_o he_o all_o who_o have_v live_v and_o shall_v live_v as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o do_v live_v those_o who_o have_v live_v and_o shall_v live_v do_v live_v unto_o god_n although_o they_o do_v not_o live_v unto_o man_n nor_o have_v any_o present_a subsistence_n either_o in_o soul_n or_o body_n if_o our_o lord_n have_v intend_v their_o live_n to_o god_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separate_a soul_n the_o intent_n may_v easy_o and_o will_v likely_o have_v be_v declare_v by_o he_o but_o the_o matter_n then_o argue_v do_v no_o way_n concern_v the_o point_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v only_o intend_v to_o the_o query_n put_v to_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o sadducee_n who_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n they_o propound_v a_o case_n of_o seven_o brother_n have_v all_o one_o same_o wife_n upon_o which_o our_o lord_n cite_v the_o word_n of_o god_n concern_v these_o three_o old_a patriarch_n luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o our_o lord_n apply_v his_o answer_n to_o their_o question_n they_o demand_v who_o wife_n their_o woman_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o resurrection_n he_o reply_v as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n have_v you_o not_o read_v this_o say_v of_o god_n touch_v the_o patriarch_n and_o than_o apply_v that_o say_v to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n according_o so_o as_o question_n the_o answer_n and_o the_o application_n be_v all_o and_o for_o aught_o appear_v only_o intend_v concern_v the_o resurrection_n without_o intent_n to_o speak_v here_o concern_v any_o state_n or_o condition_n of_o soul_n betwixt_o the_o state_n of_o death_n and_o that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o resurrection_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n intend_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o that_o quotation_n mat._n 10.28_o fear_v not_o they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n but_o rather_o fear_v he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o hell_n luke_n 12.4_o relate_v the_o same_o doctrine_n thus_o fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o after_o that_o have_v no_o more_o that_o they_o can_v do_v but_o fear_v he_o who_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v have_v power_n to_o cast_v into_o hell_n we_o may_v perceive_v that_o the_o substance_n and_o intent_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o these_o evangelist_n but_o the_o word_n or_o expression_n in_o which_o the_o same_o be_v deliver_v do_v differ_v very_o much_o yet_o not_o to_o alter_v the_o doctrine_n principal_o intend_v to_o be_v teach_v viz._n not_o to_o fear_v the_o violence_n of_o man_n who_o power_n be_v confine_v to_o this_o world_n and_o can_v extend_v no_o far_o but_o that_o man_n ought_v rather_o to_o fear_v god_n who_o have_v power_n to_o reward_n and_o punish_v after_o man_n departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o in_o a_o future_a state_n this_o we_o take_v for_o the_o doctrine_n main_o intend_v by_o they_o both_o and_o therein_o they_o do_v full_o agree_v but_o in_o the_o collateral_a doctrine_n endeavour_v to_o be_v collect_v from_o s._n matthew_n expression_n and_o word_v of_o the_o same_o so_o separate_v and_o divide_v betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n as_o that_o one_o may_v be_v kill_v and_o the_o other_o not_o or_o the_o one_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o other_o not_o in_o this_o point_n which_o i_o take_v for_o collateral_a to_o the_o main_a point_n intend_v the_o word_n of_o these_o two_o evangelist_n differ_v very_o much_o for_o in_o the_o expression_n of_o s._n luke_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o no_o division_n make_v or_o intend_v betwixt_o soul_n and_o body_n it_o seem_v then_o that_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o both_o have_v a_o right_a notion_n of_o the_o doctrine_n main_o intend_v to_o be_v deliver_v of_o not_o fear_v man_n who_o power_n be_v limit_v to_o this_o world_n and_o fear_v god_n who_o can_v recompense_v both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o s._n matthew_n may_v have_v word_v this_o matter_n according_a to_o his_o own_o conception_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o his_o word_n prove_v at_o least_o his_o opinion_n to_o have_v be_v that_o a_o man_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v dividable_a and_o that_o the_o body_n may_v be_v kill_v without_o kill_v the_o soul_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o soul_n can_v be_v in_o hell_n without_o the_o body_n but_o god_n can_v cast_v they_o both_o into_o hell_n plain_n it_o seem_v s._n matthew_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o soul_n be_v capable_a of_o separate_a state_n but_o the_o expression_n of_o s._n luke_n give_v we_o some_o warrant_n to_o think_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o deliver_v than_o doctrine_n in_o the_o word_n use_v by_o s._n matthew_n but_o that_o he_o have_v word_v it_o according_a to_o his_o own_o conception_n and_o opinion_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n take_v as_o deliver_v by_o s._n luke_n be_v no_o more_o but_o that_o man_n can_v only_o afflict_v and_o punish_v in_o this_o world_n but_o god_n can_v do_v it_o both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o and_o this_o all_o man_n must_v agree_v and_o assent_v unto_o luke_n 16.19_o begin_v that_o which_o man_n usual_o call_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n the_o forego_v chap._n 15._o consist_v all_o of_o parable_n and_o this_o chapter_n begin_v with_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o unjust_a steward_n and_o end_n with_o this_o of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n who_o very_a name_n seem_v to_o be_v some_o proof_n that_o the_o story_n be_v a_o parable_n if_o it_o be_v a_o history_n and_o true_a relation_n of_o a_o fact_n it_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o very_a strong_a proof_n of_o the_o soul_n subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n but_o pass_v for_o a_o parable_n it_o seem_v not_o a_o foundation_n firm_a enough_o to_o bear_v the_o weight_n of_o a_o otherwise_o unproved_a structure_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v for_o rev._n 6.10_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n of_o those_o slay_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o hold_v cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n how_o long_o lord_n do_v thou_o not_o judge_v and_o avenge_v our_o blood_n this_o be_v but_o in_o a_o trance_n and_o no_o more_o real_a or_o true_a than_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o great_a dragon_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o seven_o crown_n who_o tail_n draw_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o do_v cast_v they_o to_o the_o earth_n or_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a city_n descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n from_o god_n after_o s._n john_n be_v rapt_v up_o into_o heaven_n by_o the_o open_a door_n all_o be_v but_o a_o trance_n and_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o rapture_n not_o a_o ground_n strong_a enough_o to_o fix_v a_o prove_a foundation_n upon_o
be_v better_o know_v it_o seem_v it_o can_v have_v but_o little_a force_n of_o proof_n in_o this_o argument_n joh._n 12_o 26._o if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o let_v he_o follow_v i_o and_o where_o i_o be_o there_o shall_v also_o my_o servant_n be_v chap._n 14.3_o if_o i_o go_v and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o this_o late_a text_n expound_v the_o former_a viz._n christ_n servant_n shall_v be_v where_o he_o be_v intend_v after_o he_o have_v first_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o they_o and_o then_o come_v again_o to_o receive_v they_o these_o particular_a text_n of_o scripture_n be_v all_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o that_o be_v quote_v by_o other_o or_o be_v observe_v by_o we_o and_o tend_v material_o to_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a state_n or_o subsistence_n of_o humane_a soul_n after_o this_o life_n end_v and_o yet_o there_o remain_v one_o persuasive_a which_o incline_v common_a reader_n as_o much_o or_o more_o than_o any_o other_o argument_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o separate_a state_n of_o soul_n subsist_v after_o they_o be_v part_v from_o the_o body_n a_o persuasive_a rise_n from_o induction_n of_o many_o scriptural_a expression_n concern_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n as_o different_a and_o even_o opposite_a thing_n and_o principle_n rom._n 7._o describe_v the_o contest_v betwixt_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o if_o they_o be_v natural_o different_a principle_n in_o man_n whereas_o they_o be_v but_o different_a faculty_n in_o man_n viz._n the_o affection_n passion_n and_o appetite_n vital_a combat_v the_o faculty_n intellectual_a the_o knowledge_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o party_n with_o various_a success_n but_o these_o be_v express_v by_o the_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o man_n seem_v to_o represent_v they_o as_o two_o principle_n different_a and_o contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o such_o faculty_n we_o agree_v they_o be_v different_z and_o contrary_a but_o such_o principle_n we_o say_v they_o be_v not_o but_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o principle_n the_o constituent_a part_n of_o man_n viz._n his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n the_o natural_a power_n of_o such_o a_o compositum_fw-la all_o these_o faculty_n equal_o be_v and_o seem_v the_o one_o of_o they_o independent_a upon_o the_o other_o and_o seldom_o free_a from_o a_o contest_v among_o they_o in_o which_o the_o judgement_n or_o high_a prudence_n of_o the_o party_n bear_v the_o sway_n and_o have_v the_o determinative_a power_n natural_o reside_v in_o it_o so_o as_o what_o be_v here_o signify_v by_o the_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n be_v so_o far_o from_o a_o possibility_n of_o a_o real_a separation_n one_o sort_v from_o the_o other_o as_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v subsist_v but_o in_o eodem_fw-la subjecto_fw-la with_o the_o other_o and_o the_o compositum_fw-la which_o have_v not_o all_o of_o they_o be_v imperfect_a chap._n 8.1_o they_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n this_o take_v for_o a_o humane_a spirit_n or_o soul_n must_v intend_v the_o reason_n or_o intellect_n and_o the_o chapter_n go_v in_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n induce_v reader_n to_o accept_v they_o as_o different_a principle_n and_o thence_o separable_a whereas_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o put_v the_o stress_n of_o our_o argument_n upon_o their_o be_v joint-principle_n of_o one_o compositum_fw-la man_n which_o can_v consist_v without_o both_o and_o it_o seem_v as_o he_o man_z can_v subsist_v without_o they_o so_o they_o not_o without_o one_o another_o and_o so_o in_o a_o compositum_fw-la they_o be_v generate_v grow_v stand_v and_o fall_v together_o one_o and_o all_o the_o soul_n the_o body_n and_o the_o compositum_fw-la and_o so_o they_o shall_v rise_v and_o be_v recompense_v together_o and_o what_o god_n have_v so_o join_v together_o in_o band_n of_o nature_n and_o absolute_a coherence_n one_o of_o they_o to_o another_o the_o power_n of_o man_n wit_n and_o persuasion_n will_v never_o be_v able_a final_o to_o separate_v or_o to_o evince_v their_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n one_o of_o they_o from_o the_o other_o matth._n 26.41_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o sleep_a disciple_n the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a intend_v the_o body_n be_v often_o unable_a to_o act_v according_a to_o the_o reason_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o mind_n judgement_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o man_n and_o that_o infirmity_n of_o weakness_n and_o weariness_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o flesh_n thereby_o make_v unable_a to_o act_v with_o that_o vigour_n and_o continuance_n which_o the_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o phantasy_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o man_n require_v and_o show_v such_o connexion_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n as_o in_o the_o man_n one_o of_o they_o can_v act_v without_o the_o other_o rom._n 8.10_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteousness_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n both_o of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n galat._n 3.3_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v you_o now_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o flesh_n ch._n 5.16_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n ver._n 19_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n ver._n 22._o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n coloss_n 2.11_o put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n 1_o cor._n 7.34_o the_o unmarried_a woman_n care_n that_o she_o may_v be_v holy_a both_o in_o body_n and_o in_o spirit_n eph._n 4.4_o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n 1_o thess_n 5.23_o i_o pray_v your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n james_n 4.5_o the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o lu_v to_o envy_v 1_o pet._n 2.11_o belove_a i_o beseech_v you_o abstain_v from_o fleshly_a lust_n which_o war_n against_o the_o soul_n ch._n 3.18_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n ch._n 4.1_o he_o that_o suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n and_o must_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n not_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 2_o pet._n 2.10_o wicked_a man_n walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o sin_n here_o name_v rom._n 13.14_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n thereof_o 1_o cor._n 6.20_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o in_o your_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n these_o text_n and_o their_o like_a have_v a_o sound_n or_o semblance_n of_o suppose_v a_o separate_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n whereas_o their_o true_a signification_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o power_n or_o faculty_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la viz._n those_o vital_a or_o the_o vegetative_a and_o sensual_a from_o those_o intellectual_a and_o rational_a viz._n man_n ambition_n covetousness_n lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v and_o their_o descendants_n from_o his_o knowledge_n of_o common_a sense_n his_o phantasy_n opinion_n reason_n and_o prudence_n the_o first_o sort_n of_o these_o faculty_n and_o their_o inclination_n and_o desire_n be_v signify_v and_o intend_v under_o the_o name_n and_o term_n of_o flesh_n in_o s._n john_n epistle_n call_v the_o world_n and_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o these_o humane_a faculty_n be_v signify_v and_o intend_v under_o the_o name_n and_o term_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o the_o soul_n but_o both_o sort_n be_v fundamental_o and_o even_o inseparate_o unite_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n or_o that_o which_o be_v the_o compositum_fw-la both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n both_o sort_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o conjunction_n of_o these_o two_o principle_n or_o constituent_a part_n of_o the_o man_n it_o seem_v not_o single_o but_o each_o from_o the_o whole_a or_o the_o compositum_fw-la not_o the_o first_o sort_n from_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o second_o sort_n from_o the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n real_o for_o the_o flesh_n by_o itself_o can_v live_v or_o act_v and_o that_o a_o soul_n by_o itself_o either_o ever_o do_v or_o that_o it_o can_v act_v be_v question_v by_o aristotle_n and_o not_o find_v or_o believe_v by_o he_o it_o have_v be_v affirm_v by_o some_o of_o our_o author_n quote_v but_o their_o proof_n offer_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o they_o appear_v very_o unlikely_a to_o persuade_v consider_v people_n who_o can_v put_v off_o their_o former_a prejudices_fw-la nor_o have_v they_o prevail_v yet_o to_o induce_v a_o belief_n that_o the_o soul_n can_v act_v those_o faculty_n of_o the_o second_o
to_o that_o intent_n and_o give_v he_o the_o victory_n in_o it_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o servant_n work_v like_o hireling_n the_o eye_n of_o who_o mind_n be_v level_v at_o and_o fix_v upon_o their_o wage_n nor_o will_v suffer_v that_o accusation_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o stand_v fix_v as_o a_o calumny_n upon_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v reward_n become_v the_o nobleness_n and_o grandeur_n of_o their_o master_n but_o for_o man_n to_o be_v move_v and_o direct_v to_o serve_v god_n for_o reward_n of_o any_o sort_n or_o value_v whatsoever_o seem_v debasement_n to_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o christianity_n and_o we_o leave_v it_o as_o a_o inconveniency_n draw_v from_o or_o very_o much_o improve_v by_o the_o conceit_n that_o man_n precious_a soul_n have_v a_o subsistence_n in_o a_o separate_a state_n from_o their_o body_n and_o that_o upon_o their_o separation_n they_o pass_v to_o heaven_n immediate_o hence_o we_o pass_v and_o come_v to_o show_v how_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o soul_n materiality_n do_v serve_v to_o the_o solve_v of_o such_o difficulty_n as_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v separate_v subsistence_n and_o first_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a it_o take_v away_o all_o ground_n of_o question_v its_o be_v one_o or_o many_o since_o be_v generate_v and_o extinguish_v with_o the_o body_n as_o the_o constituent_a form_n of_o the_o man_n it_o can_v be_v no_o more_o many_o than_o the_o body_n or_o the_o person_n be_v so_o 2._o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v be_v generate_v or_o propagate_v answer_n or_o silence_n all_o the_o difficulty_n raise_v a_o parte_fw-la ante_fw-la concern_v the_o soul_n touch_v its_o original_a or_o derivation_n and_o there_o can_v be_v neither_o need_n of_o nor_o truth_n in_o the_o pre-existence_n or_o continual_a new_a creation_n of_o soul_n 3._o it_o remove_v the_o query_n how_o soul_n and_o body_n come_v to_o be_v unite_v 4._o it_o give_v a_o clear_a account_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v contaminate_v with_o original_a sin_n as_o well_o and_o as_o much_o as_o the_o body_n be_v so_o next_o for_o the_o soul_n be_v reside_v in_o the_o body_n and_o act_v in_o it_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a possess_v the_o whole_a and_o reside_v sparsim_fw-la in_o every_o member_n and_o small_a parcel_n of_o it_o the_o glow_a and_o inflame_a blood_n carry_v the_o vigour_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n to_o every_o least_o parcel_n of_o the_o body_n and_o thereby_o be_v every_o such_o part_n enliven_v and_o act_v according_a to_o its_o capacity_n and_o the_o intent_n for_o which_o it_o be_v make_v whence_o it_o be_v neither_o all_o in_o every_o place_n nor_o all_o in_o any_o place_n but_o possess_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o supply_n and_o act_n every_o member_n and_o parcel_n as_o have_v be_v before_o describe_v and_o thence_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n remove_v all_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o soul_n a_o parte_fw-la post_fw-la viz._n the_o question_n whither_o it_o go_v and_o what_o become_v of_o it_o and_o what_o it_o do_v or_o can_v do_v or_o suffer_v after_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n do_v also_o deliver_v from_o all_o the_o absurdity_n beforenamed_n for_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o need_n for_o or_o a_o pretence_n of_o a_o new_a creation_n of_o soul_n which_o grow_v out_o of_o nature_n and_o generation_n nor_o will_v there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o use_v young_a innocent_a soul_n with_o so_o great_a and_o unreasonable_a rigour_n or_o make_v their_o body_n the_o cage_n or_o prison_n of_o they_o nor_o will_v there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o ascribe_v to_o beast_n pre-existent_a and_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n nor_o for_o the_o deprive_v they_o of_o sense_n memory_n affection_n and_o knowledge_n which_o natural_o and_o evident_o they_o have_v and_o so_o known_o as_o it_o seem_v absurd_a to_o aver_v the_o contrary_n but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v say_v this_o will_v make_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o equal_a expectation_n the_o first_o of_o these_o we_o grant_v but_o the_o second_o we_o deny_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n we_o grant_v as_o well_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o body_n the_o same_o sort_n of_o flesh_n bones_o blood_n breath_n spirit_n urine_n humour_n and_o life_n and_o the_o same_o sort_n of_o soul_n or_o live_v flame_n supporting_z and_o act_v in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o their_o body_n but_o not_o of_o equal_a expectation_n and_o yet_o the_o difference_n arise_v not_o from_o nature_n but_o from_o the_o declare_a disposal_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n who_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n in_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n by_o that_o man_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v whereof_o be_n have_v give_v assurance_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a this_o appointment_n of_o god_n that_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o judge_v and_o reward_v according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o their_o life_n lead_v here_o upon_o earth_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o original_a of_o that_o difference_n which_o shall_v be_v between_o the_o future_a state_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n this_o resurrection_n be_v evident_o declare_v to_o be_v design_v for_o man_n without_o mention_n of_o beast_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v say_v and_o not_o for_o beast_n one_o sort_n shall_v rise_v to_o give_v account_n and_o receive_v recompense_n for_o their_o work_n and_o the_o other_o not_o and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n for_o different_a expectation_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n as_o well_o as_o it_o answer_v the_o argument_n for_o a_o separate_a state_n of_o soul_n draw_v from_o the_o accept_a rule_n of_o moral_a congruity_n among_o men._n hence_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a profession_n derive_v and_o hence_o may_v all_o argument_n for_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n be_v better_a answer_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o they_o can_v be_v from_o reason_n nature_n or_o the_o principle_n of_o any_o other_o religion_n whatsoever_o we_o go_v on_o to_o consider_v how_o the_o inconvenience_n derive_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n may_v be_v remove_v or_o help_v by_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n and_o if_o so_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o extinguish_v by_o death_n of_o the_o man_n man_n will_v not_o attempt_v upon_o utter_a impossibility_n viz._n to_o raise_v or_o consult_v the_o spirit_n of_o dead_a man_n when_o they_o know_v that_o in_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o such_o spirit_n and_o for_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n to_o the_o dead_a and_o for_o the_o dead_a remove_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o change_v it_o for_o the_o materiality_n and_o extinguishment_n of_o they_o and_o this_o change_n will_v present_o remove_v purgatory_n as_o useless_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n because_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n for_o it_o to_o work_v upon_o all_o its_o pretence_n be_v for_o the_o purge_v of_o separate_a soul_n and_o if_o real_o there_o be_v no_o such_o in_o the_o world_n then_o can_v there_o be_v no_o use_n no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v a_o real_a be_v of_o purgatory_n then_o for_o prayer_n to_o the_o dead_a who_o in_o life_n be_v holy_a person_n or_o saint_n if_o their_o soul_n be_v material_a and_o in_o death_n extinguish_v what_o can_v there_o be_v lest_o for_o addressing_z of_o prayer_n unto_o but_o only_o man_n own_o fantasy_n and_o imagination_n and_o ancient_a practice_n and_o custom_n which_o have_v a_o very_a strong_a operation_n upon_o man_n opinion_n and_o yet_o hardly_o so_o potent_a as_o to_o justify_v to_o man_n ordinary_a reason_n the_o addressing_z of_o prayer_n to_o person_n who_o they_o be_v convince_v have_v utter_o no_o subsistence_n at_o all_o and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a will_v upon_o the_o same_o account_v become_v as_o needless_a and_o unsuccessful_a as_o the_o former_a for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o soul_n to_o pray_v out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o any_o thing_n in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la for_o which_o prayer_n can_v be_v apply_v it_o must_v appear_v utter_o against_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n for_o man_n to_o pray_v for_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o or_o for_o nothing_o and_o it_o seem_v if_o man_n be_v once_o so_o persuade_v they_o will_v never_o practice_v or_o use_v such_o unreasonable_a ceremony_n in_o any_o time_n to_o come_v as_o for_o the_o conceit_n of_o soul_n appear_v or_o walk_v after_o death_n of_o the_o person_n if_o man_n can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n in_o the_o world_n they_o
not_o let_v the_o world_n be_v judge_v for_o our_o lord_n be_v main_a scope_n and_o intent_n in_o this_o text_n appear_v clear_o to_o be_v the_o warn_v of_o his_o disciple_n not_o to_o fear_v man_n for_o that_o they_o can_v only_o punish_v with_o death_n and_o no_o far_o not_o to_o fear_v they_o so_o much_o as_o god_n who_o can_v punish_v beyond_o death_n by_o cast_v into_o hell_n the_o content_n in_o both_o evangelist_n express_v that_o our_o lord_n exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v to_o other_o what_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o he_o bid_v they_o not_o be_v afraid_a so_o to_o do_v for_o that_o man_n can_v only_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o do_v you_o no_o more_o harm_n but_o god_n can_v punish_v after_o death_n and_o cast_v you_o into_o hell_n and_o this_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v more_o than_o any_o thing_n that_o man_n can_v do_v to_o we_o that_o st._n matth._n have_v word_v our_o lord_n expression_n otherwise_o be_v true_a but_o that_o our_o lord_n intent_n here_o be_v to_o teach_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n appear_v not_o in_o st._n luke_n word_n nor_o in_o the_o context_n of_o either_o of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o word_v of_o it_o in_o st._n matthew_n text_n seem_v to_o i_o but_o the_o result_n of_o that_o apostle_n judgement_n perhaps_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o that_o time_n and_o however_o here_o be_v two_o relation_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o of_o equal_a authority_n it_o seem_v man_n may_v accept_v which_o of_o they_o they_o think_v most_o likely_a or_o most_o true_a without_o much_o apprehend_n the_o abuse_n which_o atheist_n or_o profane_a person_n may_v make_v of_o it_o parag._n 11._o you_o say_v i_o make_v matthew_n and_o luke_n to_o disagree_v again_o yet_o the_o case_n be_v no_o more_o but_o this_o matthew_z say_z two_o thief_n be_v crucify_v with_o our_o saviour_n and_o those_o thief_n also_o which_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o revile_v he_o and_o mark_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n viz._n they_o crucify_a two_o thief_n with_o he_o and_o they_o who_o be_v crucify_a with_o he_o revile_v he_o luke_n only_o relate_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o have_v conversion_n which_o he_o have_v by_o hear-say_n thus_o the_o difference_n which_o there_o be_v among_o they_o be_v not_o make_v by_o i_o who_o only_o relate_v the_o case_n as_o it_o be_v leave_v it_o to_o other_o to_o adjust_a such_o difference_n as_o there_o appear_v among_o they_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o st._n luke_n relation_n only_o say_v it_o may_v be_v questionable_a upon_o these_o difference_n but_o for_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n from_o the_o have_v be_v that_o day_n in_o paradise_n i_o say_v that_o the_o crucifixion_n and_o death_n be_v on_o friday_n evening_n and_o the_o resurrection_n upon_o sunday_n morning_n and_o this_o thief_n may_v and_o likely_a do_v rise_v at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n matth._n 27.52_o the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o many_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o go_v and_o appear_v unto_o many_o and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a concurrence_n of_o opinion_n that_o the_o old_a patriarch_n have_v part_n in_o that_o resurrection_n this_o be_v grant_v i_o hope_v show_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n this_o day_n be_v to_o very_o good_a purpose_n for_o this_o promise_n to_o the_o thief_n may_v be_v literal_o fulfil_v if_o he_o rise_v at_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n i_o wonder_v how_o you_o miss_v of_o this_o effect_n of_o my_o answer_n full_o express_v in_o my_o treatise_n and_o yet_o it_o seem_v you_o do_v miss_v of_o it_o for_o else_o you_o will_v not_o have_v proceed_v as_o you_o do_v in_o this_o paragraph_n paragraph_n 12._o you_o say_v you_o wonder_v how_o i_o can_v conceive_v that_o the_o parable_n of_o dives_n be_v deliver_v to_o dilucidate_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n in_o the_o 15_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n viz._n that_o what_o be_v high_o esteem_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n may_v be_v a_o abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o how_o i_o come_v to_o conceive_v so_o this_o doctrine_n our_o lord_n deliver_v ver_fw-la 15._o and_o ver_fw-la the_o 19_o begin_v the_o parable_n distance_v only_o by_o three_o intermediate_v verse_n and_o the_o parable_n be_v very_o proper_a and_o significant_a for_o that_o purpose_n for_o what_o in_o man_n sight_n be_v more_o glorious_a and_o happy_a than_o the_o state_n of_o dives_n and_o what_o more_o miserable_a than_o that_o of_o lazarus_n and_o yet_o in_o god_n sight_n and_o knowledge_n their_o state_n be_v direct_o the_o contrary_a but_o say_v you_o christ_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n to_o the_o pharisee_n i_o grant_v it_o and_o so_o for_o aught_o that_o i_o can_v perceive_v he_o do_v that_o parable_n nor_o do_v i_o find_v any_o cause_n for_o you_o to_o doubt_v of_o it_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o suppose_v which_o i_o think_v be_v to_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v a_o parable_n and_o you_o wonder_v that_o i_o shall_v say_v parable_n be_v a_o sandy_a foundation_n for_o the_o build_n of_o doctrine_n upon_o for_o say_v you_o our_o lord_n speak_v to_o the_o multitude_n in_o parable_n and_o without_o a_o parable_n speak_v he_o not_o unto_o they_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v his_o disciple_n wonder_v at_o it_o and_o inquire_v why_o he_o do_v so_o and_o he_o tell_v they_o the_o reason_n viz._n that_o see_v they_o may_v not_o perceive_v and_o hear_v they_o may_v not_o understand_v and_o be_v convert_v for_o god_n appointment_n be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o mean_n of_o their_o ignorance_n act_n 3.17_o peter_n tell_v the_o jew_n concern_v our_o lord_n suffering_n i_o wot_v that_o through_o ignorance_n you_o do_v it_o as_o do_v also_o your_o ruler_n but_o god_n so_o bring_v about_o what_o he_o have_v foretell_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o prophet_n so_o paul_n have_v they_o know_v he_o they_o will_v not_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n but_o when_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o disciple_n be_v by_o themselves_o together_o he_o expound_v all_o thing_n unto_o they_o and_o do_v manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o and_o not_o to_o the_o world_n but_o all_o be_v deliver_v in_o parable_n to_o they_o who_o be_v without_o john_n 15.15_o you_o be_v my_o friend_n for_o all_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n i_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o you_o and_o i_o hearty_o wish_v our_o lord_n have_v expound_v this_o parable_n unto_o they_o parag._n 13._o you_o demand_v what_o can_v move_v paul_n to_o desire_v death_n rather_o than_o life_n i_o answer_v he_o be_v at_o rome_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o philippian_n such_o a_o one_o as_o paul_n the_o age_a and_o a_o prisoner_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o continual_a expectation_n of_o martyrdom_n chap._n 2.17_o if_o i_o be_v offer_v up_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n i_o will_v joy_v and_o rejoice_v with_o you_o and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o do_v so_o with_o i_o yourself_o may_v if_o you_o please_v contemplando_fw-la put_v your_o soul_n into_o his_o soul_n stead_n as_o job_n say_v or_o imagine_v your_o self_n to_o be_v in_o his_o case_n i_o judge_v you_o will_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o desire_v a_o long_a or_o a_o long_a continuance_n in_o that_o condition_n if_o it_o be_v not_o as_o he_o say_v for_o the_o opportunity_n and_o power_n to_o profit_v other_o man_n he_o say_v for_o he_o to_o die_v and_o be_v with_o christ_n will_v be_v far_o better_o 1_o thess_n 4.14_o as_o jesus_n die_v and_o rise_v again_o even_o so_o they_o also_o who_o sleep_n in_o jesus_n shall_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o but_o howsoever_o in_o such_o a_o case_n you_o may_v judge_v i_o think_v for_o myself_o that_o if_o i_o be_v in_o that_o case_n or_o a_o far_o more_o easy_a state_n of_o life_n yet_o infirm_a and_o age_a as_o i_o be_o and_o have_v withal_o so_o great_a assurance_n of_o a_o bless_a joyful_a resurrection_n as_o that_o apostle_n have_v viz._n that_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o he_o and_o to_o be_v give_v he_o at_o that_o day_n i_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v make_v little_a doubt_n in_o the_o choice_n but_o full_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o rest_v or_o sleep_v in_o christ_n to_o be_v of_o that_o number_n who_o be_v asleep_a in_o jesus_n god_n will_v bring_v with_o he_o for_o that_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a who_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o so_o job_n say_v there_o the_o weary_a be_v at_o rest_n free_v from_o oppression_n pain_n and_o suffering_n you_o mention_v a_o man_n become_v a_o prey_n to_o worm_n as_o a_o terror_n of_o death_n but_o i_o esteem_v
that_o terriculamentum_fw-la only_o and_o of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o upon_o the_o understanding_n of_o a_o man._n it_o seem_v solomon_n have_v another_o sort_n of_o apprehension_n concern_v death_n eccles_n 7.1_o he_o say_v the_o day_n of_o a_o man_n death_n be_v better_a than_o that_o of_o his_o birth_n speak_v general_o and_o chap._n 4._o when_o he_o consider_v worldly_a oppression_n and_o misery_n he_o say_v i_o praise_v the_o dead_a which_o be_v already_o dead_a more_o than_o the_o live_n which_o be_v yet_o alive_a he_o like_v the_o dead_a state_n better_o yea_o better_o be_v he_o than_o both_o of_o they_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v and_o so_o have_v not_o see_v nor_o feel_v or_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o evil_n that_o be_v do_v or_o suffer_a under_o the_o sun_n chap._n 6.3_o he_o prefer_v the_o state_n of_o a_o untimely_a birth_n before_o the_o long_a life_n of_o a_o man_n in_o a_o miserable_a or_o suffer_a condition_n our_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o man_n who_o shall_v betray_v he_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o that_o man_n not_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v it_o seem_v a_o vain_a scholastic_a invention_n that_o a_o state_n of_o be_v or_o live_v though_o in_o very_o great_a misery_n be_v better_o or_o more_o eligible_a than_o a_o state_n of_o death_n or_o not_o be_v a_o true_a and_o full_a sense_n of_o suffer_v will_v full_o convince_v man_n concern_v the_o error_n of_o that_o apprehension_n we_o find_v job_n frequent_o desire_v death_n as_o a_o period_n to_o his_o affliction_n and_o wish_v to_o have_v die_v from_o the_o womb_n and_o so_o earnest_a for_o death_n as_o that_o he_o will_v dig_v for_o it_o more_o than_o other_o man_n will_v do_v for_o hide_a treasure_n death_n be_v the_o universal_a port_n and_o remedy_n for_o the_o afflict_a and_o upon_o this_o argument_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o one_o in_o st._n paul_n condition_n may_v very_o wise_o desire_v to_o depart_v this_o life_n and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n be_v much_o the_o better_a state_n for_o he_o though_o take_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o rest_a or_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n till_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_v and_o resurrection_n shall_v come_v it_o seem_v a_o appendix_n to_o this_o paragraph_n that_o you_o have_v give_v i_o your_o pain_n upon_o this_o treatise_n but_o you_o will_v not_o go_v on_o in_o that_o course_n any_o far_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v myself_o very_o much_o oblige_v to_o you_o for_o what_o you_o have_v do_v and_o that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o any_o peruser_n have_v do_v before_o you_o and_o i_o take_v it_o as_o a_o real_a effect_n of_o your_o zeal_n and_o kindness_n st._n james_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o who_o convert_v a_o sinner_n from_o the_o error_n of_o his_o way_n shall_v save_v a_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o hide_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o believe_v that_o you_o have_v that_o prospect_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o your_o mind_n when_o you_o bestow_v the_o pain_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o i_o and_o other_o who_o may_v happen_v to_o have_v the_o perusal_n of_o what_o you_o have_v write_v why_o you_o shall_v refuse_v to_o go_v forward_o and_o to_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o so_o worthy_a a_o design_n i_o do_v not_o enough_o apprehend_v you_o have_v indeed_o many_o other_o good_a work_n and_o needful_a employment_n upon_o your_o hand_n but_o perhaps_o you_o ought_v so_o to_o do_v they_o as_o not_o to_o leave_v this_o undo_v if_o real_o and_o in_o your_o own_o conscience_n you_o be_v convince_v and_o full_o persuade_v that_o you_o be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o thing_n substantial_o or_o by_o rational_a and_o somewhat_o evident_a deduction_n from_o nature_n reason_n or_o scripture_n i_o declare_v myself_o willing_a to_o hearken_v to_o all_o and_o any_o of_o these_o evidence_n and_o to_o your_o proposal_n of_o they_o as_o soon_o as_o to_o any_o man_n you_o have_v enter_v the_o list_n and_o how_o you_o can_v now_o forsake_v they_o without_o try_v the_o uttermost_a of_o the_o combat_n i_o leave_v to_o you_o to_o consider_v in_o the_o last_o place_n of_o this_o paragraph_n you_o reflect_v upon_o what_o i_o say_v concern_v preach_v in_o trade_n town_n you_o say_v you_o be_v such_o a_o preacher_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o that_o you_o be_v reach_v and_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o expression_n but_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o within_o the_o intent_n of_o it_o for_o those_o word_n be_v among_o my_o observation_n upon_o mr._n baxter_n book_n and_o the_o intent_n go_v primely_a if_o not_o only_o to_o those_o who_o preach_v according_a to_o the_o direction_n and_o rule_n of_o that_o book_n you_o have_v discover_v to_o i_o the_o indiscretion_n of_o that_o general_a expression_n for_o which_o i_o crave_v pardon_n and_o do_v acknowledge_v there_o may_v be_v error_n in_o the_o general_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n there_o use_v and_o that_o they_o may_v and_o do_v exceed_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o writer_n but_o your_o conclusion_n that_o you_o will_v more_o insist_v upon_o the_o separate_a subsistance_n of_o soul_n and_o their_o immortality_n in_o your_o sermon_n than_o former_o you_o use_v to_o do_v i_o do_v not_o full_o approve_v the_o word_n more_o be_v capable_a of_o divers_a application_n viz._n more_o frequent_o or_o more_o positive_o or_o more_o prove_o if_o your_o more_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o three_o sense_n i_o grant_v you_o have_v reason_n in_o it_o but_o if_o to_o either_o of_o the_o other_o two_o sense_n i_o think_v you_o have_v not_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o that_o intent_n or_o practice_n rule_n of_o self-denial_n teach_v man_n to_o correct_v the_o inveterate_a inclination_n of_o nature_n qua_fw-la nitimur_fw-la invetitum_fw-la i_o will_v not_o multiply_v word_n upon_o this_o subject_a know_v i_o speak_v sapienti_fw-la paragraph_n 14._o you_o observe_v the_o inconvenient_a consequence_n of_o my_o opinion_n i._n e._n it_o offer_v indignity_n to_o man_n nature_n in_o debase_v it_o to_o that_o of_o the_o beast_n to_o the_o term_n of_o equal_v it_o with_o the_o beast_n i_o do_v not_o agree_v for_o throughout_o my_o treatise_n there_o be_v ascribe_v to_o man_n many_o high_a degree_n of_o reason_n memory_n judgement_n and_o will_v than_o beast_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o like_a nature_n be_v suppose_v in_o all_o but_o a_o apparent_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o degree_n as_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v be_v betwixt_o elephant_n and_o mouse_n camel_n and_o mole_n a_o like_a or_o great_a difference_n be_v agree_v to_o be_v betwixt_o man_n and_o brute_n both_o in_o their_o body_n and_o mind_n the_o elephant_n and_o mouse_n have_v great_a difference_n and_o clear_a likeness_n yet_o great_a difference_n be_v allow_v betwixt_o man_n and_o brute_n but_o there_o be_v still_o great_a likeness_n among_o they_o and_o this_o i_o hold_v to_o be_v no_o disparagement_n to_o man_n nature_n and_o in_o judgement_n man_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a but_o aught_o to_o follow_v truth_n to_o the_o best_a of_o their_o knowledge_n and_o give_v honour_n to_o who_o honour_n be_v due_a not_o give_v it_o where_o it_o be_v not_o due_a nor_o more_o than_o be_v due_a second_o you_o say_v the_o opinion_n contradict_v the_o common_a apprehension_n of_o mankind_n hitherto_o accept_v you_o say_v it_o contradict_v the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o this_o i_o do_v not_o agree_v have_v cite_v some_o father_n and_o divine_n to_o the_o contrary_n you_o say_v the_o opinion_n be_v bold_a singular_a and_o heretical_a that_o there_o be_v a_o degree_n of_o boldness_n and_o singularity_n in_o it_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o degree_n of_o either_o as_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v when_o i_o write_v my_o treatise_n witness_v the_o many_o quotation_n report_v in_o this_o write_n it_o fare_v with_o i_o as_o it_o do_v with_o elijah_n who_o think_v he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a servant_n which_o god_n have_v in_o israel_n but_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o thousand_o such_o left_a in_o israel_n although_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o they_o to_o the_o word_n heretical_a i_o read_v in_o king_n james_n the_o first_o his_o apology_n fol._n 302._o of_o his_o work_n that_o he_o think_v himself_o acquit_v from_o that_o charge_n by_o his_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o three_o most_o ancient_a creed_n his_o submission_n to_o the_o four_o first_o great_a or_o general_a council_n and_o to_o what_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v agree_v upon_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n here_o be_v your_o rule_n for_o examination_n of_o heresy_n and_o none_o of_o these_o trial_n
to_o such_o purpose_n 1._o make_v the_o soul_n tota_n in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la 2._o set_v on_o foot_n a_o new_a creation_n of_o soul_n by_o god_n every_o day_n and_o for_o adulterous_a incestuous_a and_o bugger_v procreation_n where_o the_o shape_n be_v humane_a by_o a_o creando_fw-la infunditur_fw-la 3._o it_o immerse_v pure_a young_a innocent_a soul_n new_o create_v in_o the_o filth_n of_o original_a sin_n without_o any_o cause_n give_v or_o offence_n commit_v by_o they_o 4._o st._n austin_n have_v thereby_o his_o imagination_n confound_v not_o know_v if_o such_o soul_n be_v one_o and_o not_o two_o or_o two_o and_o not_o one_o or_o be_v at_o once_o both_o one_o and_o two_o and_o make_v he_o think_v the_o last_o though_o a_o paradox_n to_o be_v the_o most_o likely_a 5._o upon_o this_o error_n be_v ground_v the_o preexistence_n of_o such_o soul_n and_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o viz._n their_o hover_v in_o the_o air_n their_o attend_v new_a procreation_n of_o body_n that_o thence_o they_o may_v glide_v down_o into_o they_o and_o forsake_v die_a body_n return_v again_o into_o those_o airy_a habitation_n 6._o the_o transmigration_n of_o such_o soul_n from_o one_o humane_a body_n to_o another_o and_o some_o make_v the_o transmigration_n common_a between_o man_n and_o beast_n as_o the_o pythagorean_n school_n maintain_v at_o this_o day_n by_o the_o eastern_a indian_n and_o the_o chinese_n 7._o hence_o have_v grow_v the_o invention_n of_o mahomet_n paradise_n his_o purgatory_n and_o his_o gehenna_n as_o former_o the_o heathen_n have_v their_o elizium_n and_o barathrum_n suppose_a receptacle_n in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o globe_n of_o our_o earth_n such_o a_o case_n we_o find_v argue_v in_o sallust_n betwixt_o caesar_n and_o cato_n caesar_n call_v mortem_fw-la aerumnarum_fw-la requiem_n jam_fw-la cuncta_fw-la mortalium_fw-la mala_fw-la dissolvere_fw-la ultra_fw-la neque_fw-la curae_fw-la neque_fw-la gaudio_fw-la locum_fw-la esse_fw-la cato_n answer_v that_o by_o this_o speech_n it_o appear_v what_o caesar_n think_v of_o death_n credo_fw-la falsa_fw-la existimans_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la de_fw-la inferis_fw-la memorantur_fw-la diverso_fw-la itinere_fw-la malos_fw-la à_fw-la bonis_fw-la loca_fw-la tetra_fw-la inculta_fw-la foeda_fw-la atque_fw-la formidolosa_fw-la habere_fw-la 8._o hence_o have_v arisen_a the_o popish_a purgatorium_fw-la where_o his_o holiness_n be_v allow_v to_o have_v a_o absolute_a command_n and_o by_o which_o he_o make_v profit_n according_o 9_o hence_o have_v grow_v the_o error_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o romish_a church_n 10._o those_o church_n have_v upon_o this_o error_n follow_v the_o heathen_a practice_n of_o adore_v dead_a person_n the_o one_o as_o god_n and_o the_o other_o as_o saint_n pliny_n in_o his_o natural_a history_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 55._o say_v that_o the_o body_n or_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v no_o more_o sense_n after_o death_n than_o they_o have_v before_o their_o nativity_n and_o yet_o the_o folly_n and_o vanity_n of_o man_n say_v he_o be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o they_o imagine_v the_o humane_a soul_n extend_v even_o to_o future_a age_n and_o that_o they_o have_v sense_n whereupon_o man_n render_v they_o honour_n and_o worship_n make_v a_o god_n of_o he_o who_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o man_n as_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n breathe_v differ_v from_o that_o of_o other_o creature_n and_o thus_o have_v the_o popish_a world_n practise_v to_o make_v they_o image_n and_o to_o believe_v their_o personal_a appearance_n as_o saul_n believe_v the_o soul_n of_o samuel_n appear_v in_o the_o witch_n spectre_n and_o to_o it_o saul_n stoop_v with_o his_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o bow_v himself_o so_o worship_v the_o devil_n instead_o of_o the_o prophet_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v instead_o of_o their_o saint_n who_o likely_a have_v no_o manner_n of_o be_v nor_o shall_v have_v until_o the_o resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n you_o say_v that_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n do_v not_o infer_v purgatory_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la of_o that_o opinion_n for_o if_o no_o separate_a subsistence_n than_o no_o purgatory_n nor_o no_o prayer_n for_o or_o to_o person_n depart_v this_o life_n and_o return_v to_o the_o dust_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v take_v farther_o to_o evince_v a_o sparate_a state_n of_o the_o soul_n you_o offer_v to_o raise_v evidence_n out_o of_o a_o collect_n in_o the_o office_n of_o our_o burial_n pray_v that_o we_o and_o those_o depart_v may_v have_v a_o perfect_a consummation_n of_o bliss_n in_o eternal_a glory_n i_o say_v this_o consummation_n of_o bliss_n be_v to_o be_v intend_v after_o the_o resurrection_n without_o necessary_o suppose_v any_o intermediate_n state_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o such_o as_o be_v beforehand_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o state_n in_o the_o close_a of_o your_o 6_o paragraph_n you_o say_v that_o your_o zeal_n against_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o materiality_n be_v ground_v upon_o your_o own_o apprehension_n that_o this_o conceit_n will_v introduce_v a_o inundation_n of_o atheism_n and_o profaneness_n looseness_n and_o sensuality_n to_o i_o these_o consequence_n do_v not_o appear_v at_o all_o likely_a not_o of_o atheism_n for_o that_o it_o assert_v god_n the_o creation_n generation_n and_o resurrection_n all_o act_v by_o divine_a power_n nor_o of_o any_o the_o other_o three_o for_o that_o it_o approve_v and_o maintain_v the_o extreme_a recompense_n dispensable_a in_o a_o future_a state_n after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o my_o apprehension_n be_v that_o although_o in_o your_o future_a ministration_n you_o shall_v never_o insist_v more_o upon_o the_o soul_n immortality_n but_o enforce_v your_o exhortation_n pertain_v to_o future_a recompense_n from_o the_o certainty_n and_o concernment_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o last_o judgement_n and_o execution_n of_o the_o same_o your_o auditor_n will_v not_o thereby_o become_v any_o whit_n more_o atheist_n than_o they_o be_v before_o or_o more_o sensual_a loose_a or_o profane_v upon_o that_o occasion_n but_o probable_o will_v continue_v to_o act_v and_o live_v as_o former_o they_o have_v do_v without_o that_o any_o alteration_n will_v thereupon_o be_v visible_a or_o consequent_a and_o for_o the_o intermediate_n state_n you_o say_v the_o father_n own_v a_o middle_a state_n which_o be_v neither_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n and_o because_o they_o either_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o that_o state_n be_v or_o not_o agree_v about_o it_o we_o seem_v leave_v at_o liberty_n by_o they_o to_o think_v as_o we_o may_v concern_v it_o we_o have_v not_o find_v any_o text_n of_o scripture_n positive_o assert_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n nor_o such_o a_o doctrine_n concern_v it_o as_o that_o the_o principal_a aim_n and_o intent_n of_o it_o be_v to_o teach_v this_o assertion_n for_o a_o truth_n the_o father_n opinion_n about_o it_o be_v disagreeable_a to_o one_o another_o and_o unknowing_a of_o what_o be_v the_o clear_a truth_n in_o this_o poin._n you_o say_v they_o think_v soul_n be_v neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n i_o have_v quote_v to_o you_o mr._n baxter_n book_n p._n 398._o where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o many_o of_o his_o friend_n holy_a person_n be_v go_v to_o heaven_n and_o that_o be_v spangle_v with_o their_o spiritual_a star_n the_o place_n be_v honour_v with_o they_o and_o they_o with_o it_o this_o his_o opinion_n of_o go_v to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n upon_o death_n i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o most_o common_o embrace_v among_o we_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o receive_v your_o particular_a opinion_n thereupon_o but_o these_o uncertainty_n concern_v the_o separate_a state_n the_o manner_n and_o place_n thereto_o belong_v make_v i_o more_o to_o question_v the_o verity_n of_o it_o and_o to_o conclude_v upon_o it_o rather_o in_o the_o negative_a you_o quote_v to_o i_o a_o say_v of_o cicero_n that_o if_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n be_v a_o error_n libenter_fw-la erro_fw-la this_o you_o translate_v the_o opinion_n please_v i_o well_o it_o be_v a_o innocent_a disception_n as_o if_o the_o like_n of_o a_o opinion_n and_o the_o innocency_n of_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a man_n like_o and_o choose_v sometime_o false_a and_o harmful_a opinion_n before_o those_o which_o be_v try_v innocent_a and_o beneficial_a as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o think_v i_o do_v in_o this_o point_n not_o sub_fw-la nomine_fw-la erroris_fw-la but_o by_o a_o deceive_a heart_n carry_v and_o draw_v away_o by_o pride_n conceitedness_n contumacy_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n as_o you_o word_n it_o and_o yet_o you_o do_v not_o cite_v one_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o which_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o materiality_n be_v contrary_a but_o i_o desire_v you_o will_v do_v it_o in_o your_o next_o return_n you_o say_v you_o do_v not_o require_v a_o implicit_a
considerable_a in_o the_o degree_n of_o they_o for_o that_o he_o have_v collect_v together_o all_o that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o my_o former_a author_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o tenet_n and_o have_v place_v and_o use_v they_o dexterous_o and_o as_o they_o appear_v to_o serve_v the_o most_o advantageous_o for_o his_o deign_v so_o as_o it_o seem_v i_o have_v not_o much_o more_o to_o expect_v from_o dr._n bentley_n or_o any_o other_o writer_n who_o shall_v or_o may_v undertake_v the_o maintenance_n of_o that_o opinion_n i_o think_v it_o deserve_v my_o serious_a consideration_n yet_o find_v it_o not_o convictive_a of_o my_o judgement_n in_o the_o point_n nor_o able_a to_o give_v any_o considerable_a stagger_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o for_o my_o own_o satisfaction_n in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o assistance_n of_o other_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o undertake_v to_o make_v a_o stricture_n upon_o all_o the_o argument_n deliver_v in_o this_o book_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o point_n controvert_v and_o this_o by_o page_n according_a to_o his_o order_n use_v in_o the_o delivery_n of_o they_o and_o as_o he_o bring_v no_o new_a argument_n but_o only_o use_v those_o which_o in_o my_o former_a write_n have_v be_v mention_v so_o be_v my_o return_n thereunto_o but_o a_o repetition_n of_o thing_n before_o deliver_v apply_v to_o the_o particular_n as_o they_o be_v urge_v by_o he_o and_o because_o the_o answer_n be_v repetition_n my_o intent_n be_v to_o abbreviate_v they_o as_o much_o as_o i_o can_v without_o rebate_n the_o edge_n or_o take_v from_o the_o vigour_n of_o they_o pag._n 5._o he_o come_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o say_v god_n breath_n infuse_v it_o and_o our_o breath_n continue_v its_o union_n with_o the_o body_n here_o though_o i_o conceive_v not_o that_o god_n have_v breath_n or_o do_v breath_n yet_o i_o grant_v that_o god_n do_v by_o a_o animate_v breath_n give_v life_n to_o the_o body_n of_o man_n first_o fit_v and_o prepare_v to_o receive_v and_o act_v by_o the_o same_o he_o remark_n the_o ability_n of_o speech_n be_v confer_v on_o no_o other_o soul_n but_o man_n this_o i_o shall_v word_n it_o be_v confer_v on_o no_o other_o body_n but_o man_n for_o that_o man_n soul_n can_v speak_v without_o his_o tongue_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o defect_n in_o that_o organ_n the_o soul_n can_v neither_o help_v it_o nor_o act_n to_o speak_v without_o it_o pag._n 6._o say_v that_o by_o call_v man_n a_o live_a soul_n it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o soul_n this_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v that_o beast_n soul_n be_v live_v as_o well_o and_o as_o natural_o as_o man_n pag._n 7._o among_o his_o many_o expression_n not_o grant_v i_o grant_v this_o that_o adam_n soul_n come_v by_o inspiration_n from_o the_o lord_n he_o say_v it_o it_o a_o most_o astonish_a mystery_n to_o see_v the_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o a_o immortal_a spirit_n clasp_v each_o other_o with_o such_o dear_a embrace_n i_o confess_v this_o mystery_n be_v so_o astonish_a as_o quite_o discourage_v my_o belief_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o quote_v austin_n for_o the_o infundendo_fw-la creature_n but_o not_o any_o part_n or_o place_n of_o that_o author_n where_o the_o word_n quote_v may_v be_v find_v and_o i_o doubt_v he_o be_v wrong_a in_o it_o and_o that_o this_o expression_n be_v of_o latter_a date_n than_o augustine_n time_n pag._n 8._o the_o breath_n of_o our_o nostril_n he_o say_v and_o nothing_o else_o link_n and_o hold_v these_o two_o nature_n viz._n the_o mortal_a and_o immortal_a together_o for_o the_o soul_n come_v and_o go_v with_o the_o breath_n and_o can_v stay_v one_o minute_n after_o the_o breath_n be_v go_v i_o grant_v that_o as_o fire_n for_o want_v of_o air_n be_v suffocate_v so_o both_o the_o humane_a and_o bestial_a soul_n for_o want_n of_o breath_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o only_a want_n which_o can_v extinguish_v or_o dislodge_v such_o soul_n the_o want_n of_o blood_n will_v do_v it_o and_o so_o will_v the_o want_n of_o food_n or_o nourishment_n for_o breath_n blood_n and_o food_n be_v all_o of_o necessity_n for_o the_o life_n and_o support_v of_o a_o humane_a as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o brutal_a soul_n they_o can_v subsist_v if_o any_o of_o these_o be_v want_v to_o they_o and_o it_o pass_v with_o i_o for_o a_o strong_a evidence_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o can_v subsist_v without_o all_o these_o material_a support_v be_v itself_o also_o material_a viz._n both_o the_o brutal_a and_o the_o humane_a soul_n which_o therefore_o i_o take_v for_o material_a spirit_n our_o author_n here_o say_v no_o elixir_n or_o worldly_a power_n can_v make_v the_o soul_n stay_v one_o minute_n after_o the_o breath_n be_v go_v and_o i_o say_v so_o for_o the_o blood_n and_o so_o when_o all_o the_o nouriture_n be_v spend_v the_o soul_n can_v stay_v no_o long_o say_v he_o live_v no_o long_o in_o the_o body_n say_v 1_n here_o he_o say_v the_o humane_a soul_n be_v of_o divine_a original_a create_v and_o inspire_a by_o god_n i_o refuse_v the_o word_n create_v for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o moses_n text_n here_o expound_v neither_o in_o letter_n nor_o sense_n that_o i_o can_v perceive_v and_o for_o the_o divine_a original_a and_o inspiration_n it_o seem_v the_o brutal_a soul_n and_o first_o breath_n may_v lay_v a_o good_a claim_n to_o they_o both_o although_o moses_n have_v not_o so_o full_o declare_v the_o manner_n of_o god_n act_v with_o or_o upon_o they_o pag._n 9_o say_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v perfect_o know_v pag._n 11._o to_o prove_v the_o humane_a soul_n be_v in_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n create_v by_o god_n he_o cite_v zech._n 12.1_o the_o lord_n who_o stretch_v out_o the_o heaven_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o form_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n within_o he_o comenius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o word_n here_o translate_v form_v be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n jatzar_n use_v for_o the_o form_n of_o man_n body_n out_o of_o the_o ground_n viz._n a_o formation_n from_o some_o prae-exsistent_a matter_n i_o say_v from_o these_o word_n the_o formation_n of_o a_o material_a soul_n vital_a animal_n rational_a may_v very_o well_o be_v intend_v and_o that_o this_o seem_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o intent_n of_o it_o to_o prove_v the_o soul_n create_v he_o cites_n far_a 1_o pet._n 4.19_o let_v they_o that_o suffer_v commit_v the_o keep_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o god_n as_o unto_o a_o faithful_a creator_n i_o demand_v of_o what_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n not_o of_o soul_n single_o but_o of_o body_n also_o and_o here_o commit_v the_o keep_n of_o their_o soul_n intend_v themselves_o or_o their_o person_n a_o usual_a scripture_n expression_n in_o the_o like_a case_n thus_o his_o proof_n for_o the_o single_a creation_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o nothing_o be_v answer_v which_o render_v his_o design_n vain_a viz._n of_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o substance_n because_o create_v out_o of_o nothing_o i_o grant_v the_o material_a soul_n to_o be_v a_o substance_n but_o say_v he_o not_o a_o substance_n create_v out_o of_o nothing_o you_o say_v he_o flow_v from_o the_o matter_n and_o depend_v upon_o it_o and_o say_v i_o so_o do_v the_o humane_a soul_n do_v as_o appear_v before_o and_o he_o have_v yet_o make_v no_o good_a proof_n of_o a_o single_a creation_n of_o it_o out_o of_o nothing_o well_o but_o he_o have_v another_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v such_o a_o substance_n viz._n the_o soul_n do_v exist_v and_o subsist_v by_o itself_o alone_o when_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n by_o death_n and_o i_o grant_v if_o he_o prove_v this_o it_o will_v do_v his_o work_n and_o he_o cites_n in_o proof_n luk._n 23.43_o the_o case_n of_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o christ_n promise_n to_o he_o and_o matth._n 10.28_o fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n to_o each_o of_o these_o text_n i_o have_v answer_v before_o as_o full_o as_o i_o can_v and_o hold_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o repeat_v those_o answer_n here_o st._n matthew_n text_n i_o grant_v be_v a_o clear_a proof_n that_o he_o be_v of_o our_o author_n opinion_n viz._n that_o the_o soul_n may_v have_v a_o subsistence_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n but_o st._n paul_n in_o st._n luke_n gospel_n 12._o ●4_n have_v otherwise_o word_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n upon_o that_o occasion_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o 1_o cor._n 15.18_o and_o 2_o thes_n 4.15_o and_o 1_o cor._n 4.5_o chap_n 1._o vers_fw-la 7._o and_o 8._o that_o paul_n do_v not_o hold_v or_o know_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o so_o a_o intermediate_v state_n betwixt_o
therefore_o this_o expression_n shall_v be_v pass_v here_o but_o for_o a_o quibble_n fit_a to_o serve_v the_o turn_n of_o this_o indiscerptible_a or_o undividable_a soul_n as_o our_o author_n here_o call_v it_o and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o creando_fw-la infunditur_fw-la &_o infundendo_fw-la creature_n it_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o riddle_n and_o both_o of_o they_o for_o mystical_a expression_n concern_v a_o mysterious_a imaginary_a soul_n and_o both_o intend_v rather_o to_o amuse_v than_o to_o instruct_v the_o auditor_n here_o again_o he_o recite_v solomon_n text_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o by_o far_o the_o great_a part_n of_o humane_a soul_n go_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v pag._n 17._o but_o say_v that_o before_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n it_o go_v first_o to_o god_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o itself_o to_o he_o and_o receive_v its_o judgement_n from_o he_o this_o assertion_n say_v i_o be_v mere_o arbitrary_a and_o precarious_a but_o very_o necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o that_o sense_n which_o he_o will_v put_v upon_o solomon_n text_n he_o add_v the_o soul_n must_v appear_v before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o flesh_n as_o arbiter_n and_o final_a judge_n intend_v before_o it_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n or_o hell_n it_o seem_v strange_a to_o i_o that_o our_o author_n shall_v be_v so_o positive_a and_o certain_a in_o this_o assertion_n as_o he_o be_v without_o offer_v any_o sort_n of_o proof_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o will_v put_v a_o period_n to_o all_o far_a dispute_n upon_o the_o difference_n now_o in_o discourse_n among_o we_o that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v there_o must_v be_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n first_o grant_v or_o suppose_v and_o this_o methinks_v shall_v have_v mind_v he_o of_o the_o great_a need_n there_o be_v of_o make_v the_o best_a and_o strong_a proof_n that_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o it_o but_o of_o that_o sort_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n here_o neither_o from_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o experience_n but_o a_o bare_a supposal_n of_o our_o author_n draw_v for_o aught_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o own_o imagination_n and_o let_v he_o prove_v such_o a_o go_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n as_o he_o have_v here_o assert_v or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o intermediate_n judgement_n give_v upon_o soul_n between_o death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o general_n doom_n or_o judgement_n or_o let_v any_o other_o man_n make_v proof_n of_o either_o of_o these_o point_n convince_a or_o somewhat_o clear_a and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o submit_v and_o confess_v my_o present_a opinion_n to_o be_v a_o error_n whence_o it_o seem_v our_o author_n do_v not_o enough_o consider_v the_o importation_n of_o what_o he_o pretend_v here_o to_o impose_v upon_o the_o mere_a credit_n and_o power_n of_o his_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la pag._n 18._o say_v the_o ingress_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v obscure_a and_o so_o the_o egress_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o so_o much_o as_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v hardly_o credible_a he_o say_v that_o the_o radical_a moisture_n or_o balsam_n be_v the_o oil_n that_o maintain_v the_o natural_a heat_n or_o the_o bridle_n which_o restrain_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n from_o depart_v and_o such_o departure_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o natural_a death_n and_o this_o i_o grant_v have_v before_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o very_o near_o the_o word_n viz._n that_o the_o radical_a moisture_n maintain_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n this_o moisture_n must_v be_v maintain_v by_o food_n and_o the_o flame_n in_o the_o blood_n fan_v by_o breath_n and_o the_o extinguishment_n of_o this_o flame_n be_v death_n what_o he_o say_v more_o of_o the_o soul_n here_o be_v suppositis_fw-la non_fw-la supponendis_fw-la pag._n 17._o he_o have_v say_v the_o soul_n be_v a_o create_v rational_a spirit_n conscious_a to_o itself_o of_o moral_a good_a and_o evil_a i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n alone_o but_o the_o man_n together_o that_o be_v so_o conscious_a to_o himself_o and_o that_o not_o from_o bare_a and_o uncultivated_a nature_n but_o assist_v by_o rule_n derive_v from_o god_n education_n precept_n or_o opinion_n pag._n 19_o he_o call_v understanding_n a_o faculty_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n i_o call_v it_o a_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v a_o contexture_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o soul_n can_v understand_v without_o the_o brain_n and_o if_o that_o be_v craze_v or_o spoil_v the_o soul_n can_v understand_v and_o hence_o all_o here_o say_v be_v answerable_a by_o apply_v what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n in_o man._n pag._n 20._o he_o allow_v that_o humane_a discretion_n or_o judgement_n be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o will_n and_o that_o the_o will_n follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o the_o judgement_n as_o i_o have_v before_o say_v and_o attribute_n all_o to_o the_o soul_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n in_o man_n and_o can_v be_v act_v without_o the_o brain_n and_o but_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n and_o temper_n of_o that_o organ_n pag._n 21._o say_v the_o power_n of_o cogitation_n be_v in_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v in_o the_o brain_n act_v by_o the_o soul_n he_o set_v out_o the_o great_a power_n of_o conscience_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o man_n upon_o himself_o and_o i_o agree_v it_o and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o understanding_n part_n or_o faculty_n he_o say_v it_o be_v potent_a and_o terrible_a and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o say_v that_o terror_n be_v ground_v in_o fear_n of_o suffer_v and_o the_o erroneus_fw-la conscience_n as_o potent_a and_o terrible_a as_o the_o best_a ground_v when_o the_o memory_n judgement_n and_o passion_n fail_v as_o in_o death_n they_o all_o do_v perish_v with_o their_o proper_a organ_n conscience_n fail_v with_o they_o when_o all_o man_n thought_n and_o his_o very_a faculty_n of_o think_v perish_v none_o of_o they_o ever_o to_o return_v till_o the_o time_n of_o our_o resurrection_n and_o then_o they_o shall_v all_o return_n and_o be_v revive_v as_o former_o he_o pag._n 20._o call_v the_o discretion_n the_o guide_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o will_n but_o here_o pag._n 23._o he_o make_v it_o but_o a_o counsellor_n to_o the_o will_n i_o hold_v with_o the_o former_a and_o say_v the_o will_n follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o judgement_n in_o all_o deliberate_a act_n yet_o act_v free_o viz._n with_o such_o a_o freedom_n as_o be_v natural_a to_o it_o a_o promptitude_n and_o inclination_n to_o that_o compliance_n be_v lead_v and_o yet_o run_v free_o as_o he_o say_v who_o word_n it_o be_v draw_v and_o run_v free_o i_o say_v guide_v or_o direct_v and_o run_v free_o pag._n 25._o he_o say_v the_o will_n can_v command_v the_o body_n absolute_o i_o say_v no_o otherwise_o than_o as_o the_o judgement_n guide_v the_o will_n viz._n by_o a_o natural_a and_o easy_a compliance_n pag._n 27._o he_o magnify_v the_o power_n of_o the_o will_n which_o i_o say_v can_v act_v deliberate_o but_o by_o direction_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o that_o must_v natural_o act_v by_o choose_v bonum_fw-la apparens_fw-la &_o magis_fw-la bonum_fw-la and_o can_v natural_o choose_v or_o direct_v the_o will_n to_o act_v that_o which_o be_v malum_fw-la apparens_fw-la to_o the_o state_n or_o benefit_n of_o the_o party_n act_v pag._n 28._o that_o which_o he_o call_v here_o a_o struggle_v of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o struggle_v of_o the_o rational_a faculty_n against_o the_o sensual_a desire_n pag._n 29._o his_o pondus_fw-la or_o inclination_n of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n to_o the_o body_n be_v but_o invention_n and_o have_v neither_o ground_n nor_o proof_n pag._n 30._o say_v angel_n have_v assume_v body_n i_o say_v not_o of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o show_v not_o any_o affection_n in_o they_o to_o be_v embodied_n as_o he_o seem_v to_o pretend_v he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v the_o soul_n immortal_a and_o have_v as_o such_o a_o inclination_n to_o the_o body_n i_o say_v such_o inclination_n of_o a_o immaterial_a spirit_n to_o a_o body_n himself_o pag._n 7._o call_v a_o astonish_a mystery_n and_o i_o think_v it_o very_o incongruous_a to_o reason_n and_o common_a sense_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a and_o that_o as_o such_o it_o have_v a_o inclination_n to_o the_o body_n i_o say_v prove_v both_o alike_o viz._n neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o except_o his_o say_n may_v pass_v for_o prove_v pag._n 31._o he_o call_v god_n breathe_v into_o man_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n the_o infusion_n of_o a_o new_o create_v soul_n into_o he_o this_o i_o have_v deny_v and_o
be_v obtain_v present_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n i_o say_v the_o word_n mention_v neither_o the_o one_o time_n nor_o the_o other_o nor_o it_o seem_v do_v intend_v the_o one_o any_o more_o than_o the_o other_o for_o they_o import_v a_o present_a be_v come_v to_o those_o advantage_n and_o not_o a_o future_a he_o confess_v here_o that_o humane_a wisdom_n can_v penetrate_v into_o the_o future_a state_n of_o soul_n and_o that_o man_n know_v but_o little_a of_o they_o i_o say_v can_v know_v just_a nothing_o of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n pag._n 192._o he_o cite_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v i_o ask_v whence_o that_o will_v appear_v the_o text_n say_v it_o will_v appear_v at_o christ_n second_o come_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o know_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o which_o intimate_v man_n must_v stay_v till_o that_o time_n for_o such_o knowledge_n pag._n 196._o he_o say_v when_o death_n come_v the_o soul_n dispute_v its_o possession_n of_o the_o body_n with_o he_o from_o member_n to_o member_n like_o soldier_n in_o a_o storm_v garrison_n and_o at_o last_o lose_v the_o royal_a fort_n intimate_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v be_v be_v like_o that_o of_o death_n be_v viz._n no_o real_a subsistence_n but_o a_o imagination_n pag._n 197._o say_v the_o fall_a asleep_a in_o death_n or_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n must_v not_o be_v stretch_v to_o a_o length_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o offer_v no_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o say_v that_o it_o concern_v the_o whole_a person_n soul_n as_o well_o as_o body_n and_o likely_a will_n stretch_v itself_o to_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 202._o say_v angel_n carry_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o for_o proof_n cite_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n his_o only_a ground_n for_o that_o opinion_n which_o i_o say_v be_v too_o sandy_a to_o support_v it_o for_o that_o here_o be_v no_o real_a fact_n relate_v but_o only_o a_o similitude_n fit_v to_o the_o common_a jewish_a opinion_n of_o that_o time_n pag._n 203._o grant_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o such_o conveyance_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o it_o be_v use_v for_o state_n or_o decorum_n all_o this_o seem_v but_o his_o fancy_n and_o he_o give_v no_o other_o proof_n either_o of_o the_o one_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o fact_n or_o of_o the_o other_o viz._n that_o it_o be_v for_o state_n and_o decorum_n pag._n 204._o say_v the_o presence_n of_o angel_n or_o spirit_n affright_v the_o spirit_n not_o only_o of_o man_n but_o of_o beast_n and_o thence_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o consent_n but_o of_o such_o a_o consent_n he_o offer_v no_o proof_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v a_o soul_n different_a from_o the_o material_a which_o i_o say_v be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n both_o in_o man_n and_o beast_n which_o by_o the_o production_n of_o like_a fear_n both_o in_o man_n and_o beast_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o spirit_n seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o confirm_v pag._n 205._o deliver_v but_o his_o own_o fancy_n thereupon_o pag._n 206._o he_o ask_v what_o form_n shape_v or_o figure_n can_v the_o fancy_n of_o man_n cast_v his_o own_o soul_n into_o as_o a_o help_n to_o understand_v its_o nature_n i_o answer_v into_o none_o at_o all_o i_o have_v no_o certain_a form_n of_o itself_o and_o of_o he_o may_v be_v say_v ex_fw-la nihilo_fw-la nihil_fw-la fit_a but_o if_o such_o a_o soul_n there_o be_v one_o may_v form_n a_o idea_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o of_o any_o other_o spirit_n and_o for_o rapture_n i_o have_v say_v the_o understanding_n fancy_n and_o memory_n may_v be_v effectual_o wrought_v upon_o and_o affect_v pag._n 214._o say_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_o go_v immediate_o to_o glory_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o person_n death_n and_o offer_v proof_n luk._n 23.43_o of_o the_o thief_n also_o luk._n 16.22_o of_o lazarus_n be_v carry_v and_o phil._n 2.23_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n all_o cite_v and_o answer_v before_o pag._n 215._o speak_v but_o his_o own_o fancy_n and_o without_o proof_n pag._n 225._o say_v good_a soul_n depart_v have_v a_o satisfy_a apprehension_n though_o no_o perfect_a comprehension_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o mention_n the_o see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n whereas_o st._n john_n teach_v we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v at_o his_o second_o come_v we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n do_v not_o say_v see_v god_n but_o the_o author_n produce_v no_o proof_n of_o any_o sort_n of_o see_v after_o death_n pag._n 234._o say_v those_o who_o go_v to_o heaven_n before_o christ_n ascension_n be_v full_o at_o rest_n in_o god_n and_o yet_o upon_o christ_n come_v to_o heaven_n their_o happiness_n be_v advance_v cites_n to_o prove_v this_o heb._n 11.40_o god_n have_v provide_v some_o better_a thing_n for_o we_o that_o they_o without_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a to_o this_o i_o say_v it_o rather_o seem_v to_o prove_v a_o stay_n of_o perfection_n till_o the_o whole_a number_n be_v accomplish_v at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o revelation_n also_o do_v pag._n 243._o say_v it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o difficulty_n to_o trace_v the_o soul_n beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o this_o world_n i_o say_v it_o be_v so_o to_o trace_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n in_o this_o world_n and_o i_o deny_v that_o his_o text_n prove_v that_o death_n perfect_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o just_a which_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v till_o the_o number_n be_v complete_v at_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 244._o say_v we_o have_v more_o acquaintance_n with_o soul_n than_o with_o angel_n he_o mean_v with_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n and_o then_o i_o deny_v it_o for_o angel_n and_o spirit_n have_v appear_v and_o be_v otherwise_o sensible_o perceive_v to_o act_v but_o we_o know_v not_o that_o ever_o a_o humane_a soul_n by_o itself_o be_v know_v or_o perceive_v so_o to_o do_v pag._n 252._o he_o say_v the_o radical_a moisture_n which_o be_v daily_o consume_v by_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n must_v needs_o be_v spend_v ere_o long_o here_o we_o agree_v pag._n 266._o say_v separate_a soul_n be_v capable_a of_o perform_v god_n command_n as_o well_o as_o angel_n be_v this_o i_o deny_v and_o he_o offer_v no_o proof_n he_o say_v some_o depart_a soul_n have_v return_v and_o appear_v in_o this_o world_n instance_n in_o moses_n and_o elias_n and_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o appear_v at_o christ_n resurrection_n to_o this_o i_o say_v all_z these_o appearance_n be_v of_o body_n except_o moses_n and_o of_o he_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v what_o appear_v pag._n 267._o say_v apparition_n as_o of_o dead_a person_n be_v not_o indeed_o so_o but_o be_v act_n of_o other_o sort_n of_o spirit_n to_o this_o i_o agree_v pag._n 273._o man_n oft_o meet_v a_o mortal_a enemy_n spirit_n in_o the_o disguise_n of_o a_o dead_a friend_n pag._n 274._o say_v that_o after_o the_o resurrection_n the_o raise_a shall_v know_v one_o another_o and_o talk_v and_o converse_v but_o till_o that_o time_n soul_n depart_v do_v converse_v only_o with_o god_n how_o prove_v he_o this_o not_o at_o all_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o bare_a invention_n yes_o say_v he_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o for_o if_o soul_n can_v act_v thus_o before_o the_o resurrection_n will_v be_v needless_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n i_o say_v soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n and_o see_v and_o enjoy_v god_n and_o heaven_n before_o that_o time_n make_v the_o resurrection_n of_o small_a value_n and_o little_a signification_n pag._n 284._o say_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o soul_n concern_v itself_o single_o be_v make_v perfect_a and_o enjoy_v blessedness_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n he_o tell_v we_o not_o who_o have_v make_v this_o confession_n he_o quote_v word_n of_o alstedius_n here_o but_o they_o do_v not_o import_v such_o a_o confession_n but_o whosoever_o do_v confess_v it_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o i_o deny_v it_o ment_fw-la &_o manu_fw-la and_o he_o shall_v prove_v it_o but_o do_v not_o pag._n 285._o cites_n 2_o thes_n 4.15_o it_o say_v those_o which_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n will_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o this_o say_v he_o must_v proper_o respect_v the_o body_n for_o the_o soul_n sleep_v not_o i_o say_v as_o much_o as_o the_o body_n do_v pag._n 304._o he_o say_v i_o shall_v rather_o choose_v to_o live_v mean_o then_o to_o die_v easy_o and_o if_o both_o part_n be_v to_o perish_v no_o man_n will_v die_v or_o desire_v it_o and_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n say_v i_o prevail_v not_o with_o those_o who_o live_v at_o ease_n to_o desire_v death_n he_o say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o madness_n for_o
and_o so_o be_v the_o ordinary_a practice_n of_o mankind_n he_o say_v he_o who_o buy_v soul_n know_v the_o value_n of_o they_o i_o say_v soul_n be_v never_o buy_v alone_o but_o the_o redemption_n be_v of_o person_n common_o express_v in_o scripture_n by_o the_o term_n of_o soul_n and_o so_o be_v david_n expression_n to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v it_o cost_v i_o more_o to_o redeem_v their_o soul_n viz._n to_o redeem_v they_o or_o their_o person_n pag._n 364._o say_v god_n create_v the_o soul_n as_o his_o rare_a masterpiece_n and_o the_o three_o person_n lay_v their_o head_n together_o to_o project_n it_o i_o have_v deny_v a_o separate_a creation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o i_o do_v so_o still_o and_o do_v look_v upon_o his_o present_a oratory_n to_o be_v very_o inconsiderate_a pag._n 365._o he_o confound_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o rational_a faculty_n together_o or_o make_v they_o both_o one_o thing_n or_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o pag._n 367._o all_o that_o he_o here_o say_v of_o the_o soul_n be_v proper_o applicable_a to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n he_o say_v no_o soul_n but_o man_n be_v marriageable_a unto_o christ._n if_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o the_o person_n i_o can_v not_o understand_v he_o for_o we_o never_o hear_v of_o a_o soul_n be_v be_v marry_v or_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n by_o its_o self_n single_o pag._n 369._o what_o he_o say_v here_o be_v do_v for_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o person_n pag._n 370._o say_v word_n shall_v come_v into_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n i_o say_v why_o not_o at_o the_o particular_a judgement_n if_o such_o a_o one_o there_o be_v pag._n 371._o he_o again_o here_o apply_v to_o the_o soul_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o person_n and_o i_o say_v the_o devil_n seek_v to_o devour_v not_o the_o soul_n only_o but_o the_o person_n pag._n 374._o still_o apply_v all_o to_o soul_n instead_o of_o person_n pag._n 375._o he_o quote_v three_o text_n but_o they_o all_o apply_v to_o person_n and_o solomon_n win_a soul_n intend_v person_n pag._n 379._o say_v he_o have_v prove_v that_o one_o soul_n be_v of_o more_o value_n than_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o say_v no_o otherwise_o than_o a_o man_n life_n be_v viz._n to_o himself_o it_o be_v so_o but_o not_o in_o itself_o or_o with_o any_o respect_n to_o other_o people_n pag._n 379._o say_v the_o soul_n be_v not_o make_v for_o the_o body_n but_o the_o body_n for_o it_o i_o say_v they_o be_v make_v for_o one_o another_o and_o be_v daily_o make_v viz._n procreate_v together_o pag._n 387._o cites_n a_o say_v as_o concern_v soul_n but_o it_o prove_v only_o of_o person_n and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o like_o apply_v to_o soul_n what_o be_v intend_v of_o person_n pag._n 390._o say_v soul_n can_v live_v upon_o food_n or_o earthly_a thing_n i_o say_v they_o do_v live_v upon_o food_n and_o earthly_a thing_n and_o can_v live_v without_o they_o pag._n 439._o and_o so_o to_o 441._o he_o pretend_v holy_a duty_n be_v not_o enough_o for_o christian_n viz._n nature_n improve_v by_o virtue_n and_o common_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n a_o holy_a unreprovable_a life_n rely_v on_o christ_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o support_v under_o sorrow_n and_o danger_n practise_v the_o commandment_n believe_v the_o creed_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v to_o sorrow_v for_o their_o failure_n strive_v to_o rise_v again_o and_o pray_v to_o god_n every_o day_n to_o assist_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o save_o they_o by_o his_o goodness_n and_o christ_n suffering_n he_o insinuate_v that_o such_o ordinary_a practice_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o regeneration_n without_o heavenly_a temper_n and_o tendency_n of_o soul_n viz._n a_o singular_a claim_n and_o profession_n to_o grace_n and_o sanctification_n above_o ordinary_a i_o profess_v myself_o content_a with_o the_o former_a state_n and_o will_v give_v his_o proselyte_n leave_v to_o affect_v the_o late_a without_o condemn_v they_o so_o be_v that_o they_o act_n not_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi in_o justify_v themselves_o and_o despise_a other_o pag._n 449._o direct_v man_n to_o ask_v be_o i_o bear_v again_o be_o i_o a_o new_a creature_n i_o say_v baptism_n be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o mark_v 16.16_o he_o that_o believe_v and_o it_o baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o thus_o practise_v the_o jailor_n at_o philippi_n cornelius_n the_o captain_n and_o the_o aethiopian_a eunuch_n but_o he_o require_v a_o regenerate_v of_o the_o spirit_n i_o allow_v so_o appear_v as_o to_o make_v the_o fruit_n good_a but_o for_o his_o extraordinary_a elevation_n and_o motion_n of_o spirit_n i_o leave_v they_o to_o himself_o as_o a_o fervour_n of_o fancy_n pag._n 464._o say_v your_o election_n be_v only_o secure_v by_o your_o effectual_a call_v intend_v as_o seem_v that_o every_o one_o must_v have_v and_o find_v a_o particular_a time_n of_o god_n call_v he_o to_o a_o state_n of_o regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n this_o look_n to_o i_o like_o a_o intend_a distinguish_a character_n betwixt_o they_o who_o follow_v rational_a deduction_n from_o scripture_n and_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n and_o they_o must_v show_v we_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o mighty_a deed_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v they_o that_o they_o be_v so_o lead_v for_o if_o other_o man_n work_v and_o live_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o show_v as_o good_a fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o how_o can_v they_o be_v distinguish_v but_o by_o wonder_n and_o mighty_a deed_n say_v they_o by_o our_o special_a call_v regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n but_o how_o shall_v other_o know_v these_o to_o be_v good_a or_o better_a than_o ordinary_a but_o by_o their_o fruit_n or_o mighty_a deed_n if_o those_o deed_n or_o fruit_n extraordinary_a do_v not_o appear_v we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v they_o nor_o reason_n to_o approve_v they_o in_o pag._n 461._o he_o say_v let_v none_o be_v so_o fond_a to_o expect_v comfort_n in_o death_n until_o his_o soul_n have_v first_o comply_v with_o and_o obey_v the_o call_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n thereof_o pag._n 463._o say_v soul_n of_o man_n be_v as_o it_o be_v embark_v in_o the_o call_v of_o god_n and_o if_o they_o be_v lose_v your_o soul_n be_v lose_v i_o collect_v he_o intend_v let_v your_o faith_n and_o practice_n be_v what_o they_o will_v if_o you_o have_v not_o a_o call_v to_o the_o singular_a mode_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o obey_v that_o call_v your_o precious_a soul_n after_o all_o this_o will_v be_v lose_v he_o say_v before_o that_o when_o the_o enfranchise_a soul_n be_v upon_o its_o departure_n and_o sit_v upon_o the_o quiver_a lip_n of_o the_o die_a person_n neither_o able_a to_o stay_v in_o the_o body_n nor_o abide_v to_o forsake_v it_o the_o state_n of_o it_o be_v deplorable_a this_o show_v that_o he_o imagine_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o intelligent_a little_a thing_n parcel_n or_o spark_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o she_o be_v snatch_v or_o force_v away_o from_o the_o body_n nor_o what_o shall_v move_v she_o to_o forsake_v it_o or_o leave_v the_o be_v in_o it_o or_o near_o it_o against_o her_o will_n and_o yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o can_v have_v tell_v we_o that_o as_o well_o as_o the_o forego_n viz._n imaginando_fw-la if_o he_o have_v please_v and_o this_o call_v to_o mind_v a_o relation_n make_v to_o we_o by_o dr._n collins_n in_o his_o treatise_n concern_v russia_n there_o say_v he_o when_o a_o person_n draw_v on_o towards_o death_n they_o set_v a_o basin_n of_o fair_a water_n in_o the_o window_n and_o set_v the_o casement_n also_o open_a that_o the_o part_a soul_n may_v have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o bathe_v and_o refresh_v itself_o in_o the_o water_n and_o find_v a_o open_a passage_n out_o at_o the_o casement_n and_o not_o be_v enforce_v to_o the_o contrast_n of_o pass_v through_o cranny_n of_o the_o window_n or_o other_o place_n and_o thus_o i_o part_v with_o our_o author_n and_o finish_v my_o intend_a observation_n upon_o he_o i_o read_v in_o a_o noble_a author_n of_o our_o own_o nation_n that_o in_o all_o contest_v he_o who_o stand_v only_o upon_o his_o defence_n stand_v upon_o no_o defence_n seem_v want_v one_o main_a part_n of_o defence_n viz._n the_o disarm_v or_o weaken_v his_o opposer_n whereby_o his_o intend_a defence_n shall_v be_v make_v both_o more_o easy_a and_o effectual_a thus_o far_o in_o defend_v a_o tenet_n opposite_a to_o that_o of_o our_o author_n i_o have_v use_v only_o the_o buckler_n in_o shelter_n from_o the_o dint_n of_o his_o argument_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o forsake_v the_o benefit_n which_o may_v
dead_a sleep_n nor_o can_v those_o who_o act_n free_o and_o full_o and_o enjoy_v or_o suffer_v in_o a_o high_a degree_n be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v at_o rest_n ergo_fw-la if_o the_o soul_n do_v subsist_v in_o this_o manner_n after_o death_n of_o the_o man_n the_o calling_z of_o death_n a_o sleep_n and_o a_o rest_n appear_v at_o least_o a_o very_a improper_a sort_n of_o expression_n to_o prove_v the_o minor_a viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n call_v death_n a_o sleep_n and_o a_o rest_n in_o very_a many_o place_n seem_v to_o myself_o a_o needless_a trouble_n or_o undertake_v for_o that_o all_o who_o be_v conversant_a in_o scripture_n know_v this_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a but_o deplore_o i_o again_o consider_v that_o a_o great_a part_n or_o a_o great_a part_n of_o people_n be_v not_o so_o well_o verss_v in_o this_o book_n as_o to_o be_v without_o need_n of_o proof_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o for_o their_o sake_n i_o take_v upon_o myself_o the_o labour_n of_o somewhat_o a_o troublesome_a induction_n of_o particular_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o truth_n therefore_o i_o quote_v job_n 3.13_o why_o die_v i_o not_o from_o the_o womb_n for_o if_o so_o i_o have_v now_o be_v still_o and_o quiet_a i_o shall_v have_v sleep_v then_o have_v i_o be_v at_o rest_n ecclesiast_fw-la 11.8_o if_o a_o man_n live_v many_o year_n and_o rejoice_v in_o they_o all_o yet_o let_v he_o remember_v the_o day_n of_o darkness_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v many_o add_v to_o this_o those_o who_o sleep_n sleep_v in_o the_o night_n and_o then_o this_o text_n seem_v to_o prove_v a_o long_a sleep_n job_n 14.12_o man_n lie_v down_o and_o rise_v not_o till_o the_o heaven_n be_v no_o more_o they_o shall_v not_o awake_v nor_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o sleep_n dan._n 12.2_o many_o of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v awake_v some_o to_o life_n and_o some_o to_o contempt_n mat._n 27.52_o many_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n among_o which_o say_v i_o supponendo_fw-la be_v the_o crucify_a thief_n joh._n 5.28_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o chap._n 11.11_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o our_o friend_n lazarus_n sleep_v but_o i_o go_v that_o i_o may_v awake_v he_o out_o of_o sleep_n ver._n 13._o jesus_n speak_v of_o his_o death_n and_o then_o tell_v they_o plain_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a act._n 13.36_o david_n after_o he_o have_v serve_v his_o generation_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n fall_v on_o sleep_n and_o see_v corruption_n 1_o king_n 2.10_o so_o david_n sleep_v with_o his_o father_n and_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n so_o chap._n 11.43_o the_o same_o for_o solomon_n 1_o cor._n 11.30_o for_o this_o cause_n many_o be_v weak_a and_o sickly_a among_o you_o and_o many_o sleep_n chap._n 15.6_o christ_n be_v see_v of_o above_o 500_o brethren_n at_o once_o of_o who_o some_o be_v fall_v asleep_o 1_o thes_n 4.14_o those_o also_o who_o sleep_n in_o jesus_n will_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o ver._n 15._o and_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a shall_v not_o prevent_v they_o that_o be_v asleep_a ver._n 16._o and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o these_o be_v a_o proof_n that_o death_n and_o die_v be_v in_o scripture_n very_o often_o term_v a_o sleep_n and_o sleep_v as_o to_o death_n be_v there_o call_v and_o count_v a_o rest_n i_o quote_v job_n 3.17_o there_o the_o wicked_a cease_v from_o trouble_v and_o there_o the_o weary_a be_v at_o rest_n dan._n 12.13_o thou_o shall_v rest_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o lot_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n 2_o thes_n 1.7_o god_n will_v recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o who_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o who_o be_v trouble_v rest_v with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n heb._n 4.1_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest._n ver._n 3._o we_o who_o have_v believe_v do_v enter_v into_o his_o rest_n as_o he_o say_v ver._n 6._o and_o some_o must_v enter_v therein_o ver._n 9_o there_o remain_v therefore_o a_o rest_n for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n ver._n 10._o and_o those_o that_o enter_v into_o rest_n cease_v from_o their_o work_n revel_v 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o and_o thus_o appear_v that_o death_n in_o scripture_n be_v often_o call_v a_o rest_n and_o account_v so_o the_o scripture_n speak_v thus_o of_o death_n in_o very_a many_o place_n and_o even_o of_o ordinary_a custom_n and_o course_n and_o either_o the_o thing_n so_o deliver_v be_v proper_a and_o true_a or_o the_o speech_n be_v improper_a and_o mislead_v if_o the_o soul_n subsist_v act_n and_o suffer_v after_o death_n as_o before_o be_v say_v the_o scripture_n speak_v improper_o of_o death_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n of_o the_o man_n than_o these_o scriptural_a expression_n concern_v death_n be_v proper_a and_o true_a i_o have_v a_o great_a inclination_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v proper_o and_o true_o than_o otherwise_o and_o therefore_o do_v conclude_v these_o expression_n be_v proper_a and_o true_a and_o that_o the_o soul_n have_v not_o such_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n as_o above_o be_v describe_v but_o rather_o that_o it_o be_v material_a and_o extinguish_v with_o death_n of_o the_o man._n my_o second_o argument_n for_o positive_a proof_n of_o this_o tenet_n rise_v from_o many_o particular_a place_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v allege_v and_o produce_v in_o nature_n of_o a_o sorite_n each_o prove_v by_o its_o self_n and_o all_o fortify_v the_o tenet_n intend_v to_o be_v defend_v in_o which_o i_o begin_v from_o a_o scripture_n which_o discourse_v most_o copious_o upon_o the_o state_n of_o man_n after_o death_n above_o any_o other_o text_n whatsoever_o part_v of_o the_o work_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n viz._n his_o 1_o cor._n 15._o he_o begin_v there_o ver._n 13._o and_o say_v if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a then_o be_v christ_n not_o rise_v and_o then_o viz._n consequent_o if_o no_o resurrection_n our_o preach_a be_v vain_a and_o your_o faith_n be_v also_o vain_a and_o we_o be_v false_a witness_n and_o you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n and_o they_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v upon_o this_o i_o argue_v if_o the_o soul_n enjoy_v a_o separate_a state_n and_o go_v to_o heaven_n at_o the_o man_n death_n then_o how_o can_v these_o dreadful_a consequence_n follow_v upon_o the_o failure_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o if_o the_o soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n at_o the_o death_n that_o will_v enjoy_v bliss_n and_o happiness_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n though_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n at_o all_o but_o our_o apostle_n here_o conclude_v all_o christianity_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a without_o a_o resurrection_n and_o the_o next_o verse_n viz._n 19_o he_o say_v if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a but_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o by_o he_o come_v also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o seem_v plain_o infer_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n than_o our_o hope_n in_o christ_n can_v extend_v only_o to_o this_o world_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o it_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v more_o miserable_a than_o other_o man_n who_o give_v themselves_o more_o liberty_n in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o they_o he_o go_v on_o through_o this_o long_a chapter_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o manner_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o ver._n 58._o he_o conclude_v abound_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n forasmuch_o as_o you_o know_v by_o this_o my_o discourse_n of_o the_o resurrection_n that_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n thus_o he_o discourse_v full_o and_o large_o upon_o the_o resurrection_n without_o a_o word_n speak_v or_o a_o hint_n give_v concern_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n or_o a_o particular_a judgement_n or_o any_o appertenant_a to_o a_o state_n intermediate_v between_o death_n and_o judgement_n final_a i_o proceed_v in_o the_o work_v of_o this_o apostle_n and_o quote_v he_o again_o 1_o thes_n 4.13_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o sorrow_n for_o their_o dead_a friend_n as_o other_o who_o have_v no_o hope_n do_v for_o say_v he_o we_o believe_v that_o jesus_n die_v and_z rise_v again_o and_o even_o so_o also_o those_o who_o sleep_v in_o
we_o be_v now_o come_v in_o faith_n hope_n and_o expectation_n have_v receive_v a_o full_a and_o true_a declaration_n of_o they_o we_o have_v thus_o traverse_v the_o large_a field_n of_o st._n paul_n epistle_n collect_v evidence_n concern_v his_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n touch_v the_o future_a state_n of_o mankind_n after_o a_o death_n in_o this_o world_n the_o text_n of_o his_o which_z have_v be_v quote_v treat_v particular_o of_o such_o future_a state_n and_o intend_v to_o teach_v concern_v the_o same_o deliver_v thereupon_o according_a as_o in_o the_o say_a quotation_n have_v be_v express_v before_o have_v be_v quote_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n four_o text_n of_o his_o say_a write_n allege_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o immateriality_n viz._n 2_o cor._n 5._o ver._n 6._o &_o 8._o and_o phil._n 1.23_o and_o heb._n 12.9_o and_o heb._n 12.22_o to_o these_o i_o say_v none_o of_o those_o place_n treat_v particular_o of_o the_o future_a state_n of_o mankind_n or_o intend_v to_o teach_v or_o examine_v what_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v next_o i_o say_v that_o of_o these_o four_o place_n none_o speak_v prove_o but_o phil._n 1.23_o viz._n his_o desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n i_o say_v the_o question_n make_v thereupon_o be_v concern_v the_o mean_v or_o sense_n of_o the_o expression_n of_o be_v with_o christ_n it_o intend_v a_o state_n more_o desirable_a than_o that_o which_o at_o that_o time_n he_o enjoy_v i_o take_v a_o sleep_a in_o jesus_n to_o be_v so_o viz._n a_o more_o desirable_a state_n than_o that_o which_o at_o that_o time_n he_o enjoy_v that_o this_o be_v a_o bless_a state_n we_o read_v revel_v 14.13_o after_o mention_v the_o patience_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o persecution_n the_o text_n say_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o state_n care_v for_o by_o god_n and_o under_o his_o protection_n appear_v rom._n 14.7_o none_o of_o we_o live_v to_o himself_o and_o no_o man_n die_v to_o himself_o ver._n 8._o for_o whether_o we_o live_v we_o live_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o die_v unto_o the_o lord_n whether_o we_o live_v therefore_o or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n be_v verse_n 9_o for_o christ_n die_v rise_v and_o revive_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o live_a ver._n 10._o we_o shall_v all_o stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n so_o chap._n 4.17_o god_n who_o quicken_v the_o dead_a and_o call_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v and_o so_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n for_o all_o live_v unto_o he_o though_o the_o body_n turn_v to_o dust_n and_o the_o soul_n expire_v yet_o neither_o of_o than_o be_v lose_v joh._n 11.23_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o martha_n thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o she_o answer_v i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o last_o day_n he_o reply_v i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v and_o whoso_o live_v and_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o die_v viz._n so_o as_o to_o fall_v out_o of_o my_o care_n or_o protection_n or_o knowledge_n thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o speedy_o and_o for_o other_o joh._n 6.39_o of_o that_o which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o i_o will_v lose_v nothing_o but_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 40._o all_o who_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n which_o paul_n to_o tim._n call_v that_o day_n so_o ver._n 44._o &_o 54._o all_o speak_v of_o raise_v believer_n up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o receive_v blessing_n and_o reward_n whereas_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v attend_v with_o a_o second_o death_n this_o intend_v a_o answer_n additional_a to_o paul_n desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n and_o touch_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o this_o apostle_n write_n concern_v a_o state_n of_o mankind_n after_o death_n my_o quotation_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o either_o he_o know_v of_o no_o intermediate_n state_n betwixt_o death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n or_o else_o he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v or_o believe_v it_o for_o his_o knowledge_n that_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n in_o the_o world_n of_o soul_n subsist_v in_o a_o separate_a state_n from_o their_o body_n there_o be_v great_a probability_n as_o that_o solomon_n text_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n and_o st._n matthew_n text_n of_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n and_o both_o heathen_a and_o jewish_a opinion_n to_o that_o purpose_n it_o seem_v can_v hardly_o escape_v his_o knowledge_n but_o most_o likely_a it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v or_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o opinion_n for_o that_o in_o any_o of_o his_o write_n upon_o that_o subject_a he_o do_v neither_o relate_v to_o it_o nor_o mention_v it_o much_o less_o do_v he_o confirm_v or_o approve_v it_o but_o put_v all_o expectation_n of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n future_a to_o this_o world_n upon_o the_o score_n and_o account_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o upon_o the_o foot_n of_o that_o account_n i_o leave_v it_o with_o this_o apostle_n intend_v to_o examine_v what_o other_o apostle_n have_v write_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n james_n and_o quote_v out_o of_o it_o chap._n 1.12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v temptation_n for_o when_o he_o be_v try_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o in_o word_n very_o like_o 2_o tim._n 4.8_o and_o of_o the_o same_o import_n and_o that_o apply_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o that_o day_n or_o the_o last_o day_n so_o chap._n 5.7_o be_v patient_a brethren_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n ver._n 8._o again_o be_v patient_a for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o give_v no_o expectatation_n of_o recompense_n till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o go_v on_o to_o st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n 1.4_o you_o be_v beget_v to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o you_o ver._n 5._o who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n do_v not_o say_v to_o be_v reveal_v at_o the_o time_n of_o your_o death_n so_o chap._n 5.4_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o agree_v with_o paul_n and_o james_n just_a before_o chap._n 4.5_o those_o who_o speak_v evil_a of_o you_o shall_v give_v account_n to_o he_o who_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a this_o must_v intend_v the_o resurrection_n for_o that_o no_o judgement_n shall_v pass_v of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a together_o till_o that_o time_n ver._n 13._o rejoice_v in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n suffering_n that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o may_v be_v glad_a also_o with_o exceed_v joy_n this_o prove_v to_o my_o understanding_n that_o the_o ravish_a joy_n of_o a_o new_o depart_v soul_n be_v unknown_a to_o this_o prime_a apostle_n 2_o pet._n 2.9_o the_o lord_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a and_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v so_o ver._n 4._o evil_a angel_n be_v deliver_v into_o chain_n of_o darkness_n to_o be_v reserve_v unto_o judgement_n judas_n ver._n 6._o those_o angel_n be_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n this_o show_v what_o sort_n of_o judgement_n be_v before_o intend_v chap._n 3.12_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n ought_v you_o to_o be_v in_o all_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o but_o we_o look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o see_v you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n be_v diligent_a that_o you_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a thus_o he_o exhort_v to_o a_o holy_a life_n from_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n and_o dissolution_n of_o the_o earth_n sky_n and_o element_n about_o it_o without_o a_o word_n of_o separate_a soul_n or_o a_o particular_a judgement_n or_o a_o intermediate_n state_n between_o death_n and_o judgement_n
final_a and_o hence_o it_o seem_v st._n peter_n believe_v they_o not_o nor_o like_v to_o build_v any_o thing_n upon_o they_o some_o have_v allege_v 1_o pet._n 3.19_o to_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n viz._n that_o christ_n be_v quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n etc._n etc._n concern_v this_o text_n i_o have_v say_v before_o that_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v it_o if_o i_o shall_v offer_v to_o prove_v by_o this_o text_n it_o will_v be_v to_o prove_v what_o i_o know_v not_o by_o what_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o what_o i_o will_v not_o offer_v i_o can_v agree_v to_o accept_v my_o desire_n be_v to_o have_v the_o immateriality_n or_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n prove_v by_o some_o text_n that_o i_o do_v understand_v and_o because_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v this_o text_n i_o refuse_v to_o accept_v it_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o proceed_v to_o observe_v in_o the_o write_n of_o st._n john_n 1_o joh._n 2.28_o little_a child_n abide_v in_o he_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v have_v confidence_n and_o not_o he_o ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n and_o chap._n 3.2_o belove_a now_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v both_o these_o text_n put_v all_o our_o expectation_n after_o death_n to_o the_o future_a appear_v or_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o still_o without_o notice_n of_o any_o state_n or_o thing_n intermediate_n between_o death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n judas_n ver._n 14._o behold_v the_o lord_n come_v with_o ten_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n to_o execute_v judgement_n upon_o all_o and_o to_o convince_v all_o that_o be_v ungodly_a among_o they_o of_o all_o their_o ungodly_a deed_n and_o speech_n speak_v against_o he_o refer_v all_o judgement_n future_a to_o life_n unto_o that_o of_o the_o great_a or_o last_o day_n as_o we_o have_v find_v it_o do_v before_o by_o all_o the_o apostle_n who_o write_n be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n with_o a_o consent_n and_o agreement_n among_o they_o much_o above_o ordinary_a and_o which_o testify_v they_o be_v le●_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n promise_v to_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o see_v this_o promise_n actual_o and_o complete_o fulfil_v in_o the_o text_n allege_v out_o of_o all_o their_o write_n and_o wherein_o they_o all_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o now_o go_v on_o to_o the_o search_n of_o the_o four_o evangelist_n according_a to_o our_o lord_n direction_n search_v the_o scripture_n mat._n 13.36_o christ_n expound_v his_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o weed_v or_o root_v up_o in_o this_o world_n but_o suffer_v to_o grow_v here_o but_o ver._n 40._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n shall_v gather_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n ver._n 43._o and_o then_o shall_v the_o righteous_a shine_n forth_o as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n without_o mention_n or_o notice_n of_o a_o intermediate_n judgement_n or_o state_n chap._n 19.28_o you_o who_o have_v follow_v i_o in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v fit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n you_o shall_v sit_v on_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o every_o one_o who_o have_v suffer_v for_o my_o sake_n shall_v receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_v and_o shall_v inherit_v everlasting_a life_n observe_v peter_n ver._n 27._o have_v ask_v our_o lord_n what_o reward_n they_o who_o have_v forsake_v all_o for_o his_o sake_n shall_v have_v therefore_o christ_n give_v the_o abovesaid_a answer_n but_o if_o he_o have_v intend_v or_o know_v of_o a_o immediate_a go_v to_o heaven_n of_o soul_n upon_o death_n of_o party_n it_o seem_v that_o in_o this_o place_n he_o can_v not_o reasonable_o have_v omit_v the_o mention_n of_o it_o whence_o likely_a he_o neither_o intend_v it_o nor_o know_v of_o it_o chap._n 16.27_o the_o son_n of_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o word_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v seem_v to_o import_v that_o this_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o only_o know_v time_n appoint_v for_o the_o distribution_n of_o recompense_n future_a to_o this_o life_n mark_v 8.38_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o my_o word_n of_o he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n without_o notice_n take_v of_o any_o intermediate_n time_n or_o state_n luk._n 12.8_o he_o that_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o deny_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n chap._n 13.25_o when_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n have_v shut_v the_o door_n those_o knock_n without_o can_v come_v in_o but_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n shall_v go_v to_o the_o place_n of_o weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n this_o seem_v the_o effect_n of_o a_o general_n judgement_n chap._n 10.14_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o for_o you_o ver._n 12._o more_o tolerable_a in_o that_o day_n for_o sodom_n than_o for_o that_o city_n chap._n 14.14_o call_v to_o thy_o feast_n the_o poor_a lame_a and_o blind_a and_o thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v for_o they_o can_v recompense_v thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrecteon_n of_o the_o just_a this_o seem_v plain_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v the_o time_n and_o even_o the_o only_a time_n for_o expectation_n of_o recompense_n and_o that_o deliver_v by_o our_o lord_n be_v own_o mouth_n the_o high_a authority_n that_o christian_n can_v expect_v or_o desire_v job_n 5.28_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shad_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n who_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n in_o the_o grave_n not_o the_o body_n or_o soul_n but_o the_o dead_a person_n and_o they_o shall_v come_v forth_o at_o that_o time_n only_o and_o be_v doom_v and_o judge_v to_o life_n or_o damnation_n chap._n 6.39_o my_o father_n will_n be_v that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o shall_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 40._o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 44._o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 54._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n in_o the_o 2d_o &_o 3d._n of_o the_o revelation_n there_o be_v a_o great_a variety_n of_o reward_n promise_v to_o he_o that_o overcome_v but_o here_o the_o only_a reward_n in_o our_o four_o place_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o life_n everlasting_a as_o a_o abundant_a recompense_n for_o all_o faith_n performance_n and_o suffering_n and_o show_v that_o to_o be_v the_o only_a time_n future_a to_o this_o world_n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v warrantable_o and_o upon_o good_a ground_n expect_v and_o hope_v for_o by_o all_o true_a believer_n chap._n 12.48_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v the_o same_o shall_v judge_v a_o man_n at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o mat._n 12.36_o of_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o man_n shall_v speak_v they_o shall_v give_v account_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n if_o they_o have_v give_v such_o a_o account_n of_o a_o particular_a judgement_n soon_o after_o death_n what_o need_n can_v there_o be_v of_o bring_v idle_a word_n to_o account_v over_o again_o at_o the_o general_n judgement_n there_o seem_v no_o probability_n in_o it_o chap._n 14.1_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n and_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o this_o show_v when_o
recompenc_n be_v warrantable_a to_o be_v expect_v viz._n at_o christ_n second_o come_v and_o to_o look_v for_o they_o soon_o be_v against_o his_o own_o direction_n in_o this_o text_n well_o fortify_v and_o confirm_v by_o act_v 3.19_o repent_v you_o therefore_o and_o be_v convert_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v blot_v out_o when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_a shall_v come_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v jesus_n christ_n who_o the_o heaven_n must_v receive_v until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o time_n when_o among_o other_o thing_n man_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o former_a being_n and_o become_v the_o same_o person_n that_o they_o be_v before_o and_o so_o shall_v account_v at_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o in_o all_o probability_n not_o before_o well_o but_o what_o become_v of_o people_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o take_v it_o for_o most_o likely_a that_o the_o body_n verge_n to_o dust_n gradatim_fw-la and_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n which_o i_o take_v for_o the_o soul_n extinguish_v in_o death_n as_o dr._n willis_n say_v illico_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la it_o vanish_v as_o the_o flame_n of_o spirit_n of_o wine_n when_o the_o spirit_n be_v consume_v and_o thus_o i_o conceive_v man_n die_v thus_o they_o rest_v and_o believer_n sleep_v in_o jesus_n till_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n job_n 14.12_o even_o as_o the_o flood_n decay_v and_o dry_v up_o so_o man_n lie_v down_o and_o rise_v not_o at_o all_o till_o the_o heaven_n be_v no_o more_o they_o shall_v not_o awake_v nor_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o sleep_n thus_o job_n and_o i_o agree_v punctual_o in_o our_o state_n of_o death_n and_o so_o we_o do_v in_o that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n job_n 19.25_o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o late_a day_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o though_o after_o my_o skin_n worm_n destroy_v this_o body_n yet_o in_o my_o flesh_n shall_v i_o see_v god_n and_o as_o 1_o joh._n 3.2_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v at_o his_o second_o come_v and_o not_o till_o then_o not_o by_o go_v to_o heaven_n in_o effigy_n but_o till_o then_o believer_n in_o death_n enjoy_v such_o a_o rest_n as_o the_o revel_n call_v bless_v they_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n and_o rest_n from_o their_o labour_n so_o heb._n 4.1_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n leave_v we_o of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n ver._n 6._o some_o must_v enter_v therein_o ver._n 9_o there_o remain_v a_o rest_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n ver._n 10._o he_o that_o be_v enter_v into_o his_o rest_n have_v cease_v from_o his_o own_o work_n as_o god_n do_v from_o he_o and_o such_o a_o rest_n be_v a_o pious_a death_n and_o in_o assure_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n dan._n 12.13_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o go_v thy_o way_n till_o the_o end_n be_v for_o thou_o shall_v rest_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o lot_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n and_o here_o i_o cease_v and_o rest_v my_o second_o positive_a argument_n against_o the_o immateriality_n and_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o their_o go_v to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n before_o the_o resurrection_n and_o upon_o this_o argument_n i_o intend_v to_o make_v three_o short_a observation_n the_o first_o of_o which_o grow_v from_o our_o author_n expression_n page_n 49._o of_o his_o say_a book_n there_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v capable_a only_o of_o social_n glory_n or_o suffer_v or_o a_o blessedness_n in_o partnership_n with_o the_o body_n and_o that_o it_o can_v neither_o exert_v its_o own_o power_n nor_o enjoy_v its_o own_o happiness_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n the_o opinion_n of_o a_o sleep_a interval_n of_o the_o soul_n he_o say_v take_v its_o rise_n from_o this_o error_n they_o conceive_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v so_o dependent_a upon_o the_o body_n at_o least_o in_o all_o its_o operation_n that_o when_o death_n rend_v it_o from_o the_o body_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v leave_v as_o in_o a_o swoon_n or_o sleep_v unable_a to_o exert_v its_o proper_a power_n or_o enjoy_v that_o felicity_n which_o we_o ascribe_v to_o it_o in_o its_o state_n of_o separation_n thus_o our_o author_n to_o which_o i_o reply_v they_o who_o so_o conceive_v be_v father_n very_o ancient_a and_o of_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o my_o opinion_n the_o ground_n they_o stand_v upon_o be_v firm_a and_o good_a viz._n they_o and_o we_o and_o all_o man_n who_o consider_v may_v and_o do_v perceive_v by_o hourly_a experience_n that_o the_o soul_n do_v no_o more_o act_n or_o suffer_v without_o the_o body_n than_o the_o body_n without_o the_o soul_n nor_o either_o of_o they_o without_o the_o other_o this_o constant_a experience_n teach_v to_o this_o also_o reason_n very_o well_o agree_v and_o man_n have_v never_o yet_o meet_v with_o good_a reason_n plain_a experience_n or_o clear_a scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_n nor_o do_v our_o author_n or_o any_o other_o show_v any_o convince_a or_o strong_a or_o likely_a evidence_n that_o ever_o any_o soul_n do_v or_o that_o it_o can_v act_v or_o suffer_v without_o partnership_n with_o the_o body_n and_o in_o conjunction_n with_o it_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v how_o then_o can_v it_o subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n if_o it_o can_v neither_o act_v nor_o suffer_v without_o it_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o be_o not_o to_o account_v for_o such_o a_o subsistence_n because_o i_o deny_v the_o thing_n and_o say_v the_o soul_n extinguish_v in_o death_n but_o those_o who_o hold_v both_o opinion_n viz._n the_o separate_a state_n and_o the_o non-activity_n do_v imaginarily_o cast_v the_o soul_n into_o such_o a_o swoon_n or_o sleep_n as_o the_o author_n mention_n in_o a_o limbus_n or_o dormitory_n create_v by_o invention_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o those_o who_o so_o believe_v both_o opinion_n be_v necessitate_v to_o invent_v such_o place_n that_o the_o soul_n neither_o act_n nor_o suffer_v without_o the_o body_n be_v true_a and_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n be_v grant_v place_n for_o dormitory_n be_v a_o reasonable_a and_o necessary_a invention_n but_o if_o the_o truth_n stand_v with_o i_o and_o the_o soul_n extinguish_v in_o death_n it_o neither_o act_n nor_o suffer_v without_o the_o body_n nor_o yet_o be_v there_o need_v to_o invent_v dormitory_n or_o purgatory_n for_o reception_n of_o such_o soul_n as_o have_v no_o real_a subsistence_n he_o have_v true_o relate_v a_o cause_n why_o the_o ancient_n do_v believe_v soul_n rest_v in_o dormitory_n till_o the_o resurrection_n not_o go_v to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n till_o that_o time_n and_o a_o reunion_n with_o their_o body_n viz._n because_o they_o believe_v soul_n can_v not_o act_v or_o suffer_v without_o their_o body_n according_a to_o the_o common_a course_n of_o nature_n and_o experience_n this_o i_o agree_v to_o be_v true_a and_o a_o reasonable_a ground_n for_o they_o to_o stand_v upon_o in_o this_o point_n and_o that_o they_o err_v only_o in_o believe_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n whence_o they_o be_v force_v to_o invent_v dormitory_n but_o i_o say_v though_o the_o author_n have_v give_v we_o a_o true_a and_o good_a cause_n why_o the_o ancient_n think_v soul_n go_v not_o to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n before_o the_o resurrection_n ground_v upon_o the_o nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n there_o be_v another_o cause_n and_o reason_n for_o their_o so_o believe_v as_o true_a well_o ground_v and_o evident_a as_o the_o former_a which_o will_v weigh_v with_o many_o believer_n more_o than_o that_o can_v do_v viz._n the_o tenor_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o text_n before_o quote_v by_o i_o in_o this_o argument_n there_o be_v another_o marvellous_a agreement_n among_o they_o for_o all_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n viz._n that_o all_o man_n must_v after_o death_n appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n at_o his_o second_o come_v at_o that_o day_n at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o he_o shall_v appear_v without_o mention_n of_o any_o other_o time_n or_o any_o other_o judgement_n or_o any_o go_n to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o sort_n of_o declaration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n after_o death_n be_v a_o good_a and_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o those_o ancient_n to_o believe_v that_o soul_n go_v not_o to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n before_o the_o resurrection_n and_o i_o hold_v this_o declaration_n to_o be_v a_o good_a true_a and_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o people_n so_o to_o believe_v at_o this_o day_n and_o with_o this_o i_o finish_v my_o first_o observation_n upon_o this_o argument_n 2._o my_o